Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n detect_v falsehood_n great_a 27 3 2.0640 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

lewis_n who_o die_v in_o a_o battle_n against_o the_o turk_n an._n 1528._o and_o then_o the_o covenant_n be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n be_v king_n of_o hungary_n after_o the_o death_n of_o ladislaus_n be_v strife_n also_o for_o the_o duchy_n of_o austria_n three_o brethren_n the_o emperor_n albert_n and_o sigismond_n contend_v for_o it_o they_o do_v name_v some_o umpire_n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o judge_v against_o the_o mighty_a frederick_n carry_v it_o but_o in_o the_o year_n 1463._o albert_n besiege_v his_o brother_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o vienna_n so_o straight_o that_o the_o emperor_n send_v for_o relief_n unto_o george_n king_n of_o bohemia_n who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o despise_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o send_v unto_o pope_n pius_fw-la entreat_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o accurse_v george_n with_o his_o thunder_n the_o pope_n yield_v because_o of_o that_o necessity_n say_v naucler_n and_o the_o bohemian_o deliver_v the_o emperor_n but_o so_o wary_o that_o he_o neither_o do_v perish_v nor_o be_v victorious_a in_o the_o year_n 1466._o frederick_n go_v to_o rome_n some_o say_v to_o perform_v a_o vow_n other_o say_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n concern_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n whatsoever_o be_v his_o purpose_n he_o return_v in_o peace_n and_o by_o his_o mean_n peace_n continue_v in_o italy_n and_o germany_n at_o that_o time_n charles_n surname_v the_o hardy_a duke_n of_o burgundy_n flanders_n gelderland_n holland_n etc._n etc._n dare_v hold_v all_o the_o world_n for_o his_o enemy_n and_o spare_v not_o to_o invade_v and_o take_v town_n where_o he_o please_v he_o have_v a_o conference_n with_o the_o emperor_n at_o lutzemburg_n and_o among_o other_o purpose_n he_o demand_v the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n because_o it_o sometime_o have_v belong_v unto_o the_o empire_n and_o now_o he_o intend_v to_o make_v conquest_n of_o italy_n the_o emperor_n know_v and_o mislike_v his_o ambition_n give_v he_o fair_a word_n and_o depart_v the_o city_n in_o the_o night_n wherefore_o the_o duke_n besiege_v colein_n the_o emperor_n come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o great_a army_n yet_o desirous_a of_o peace_n they_o be_v both_o induce_v to_o agree_v and_o charles_n leave_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o he_o can_v not_o live_v in_o peace_n he_o intend_v to_o march_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o molest_v the_o swisser_n in_o his_o way_n but_o he_o be_v kill_v by_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 1476._o then_o the_o french_a the_o swisser_n and_o other_o repossess_v themselves_o of_o what_o charles_n have_v take_v from_o they_o and_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n son_n marry_v the_o only_a daughter_n of_o charles_n and_o keep_v his_o inheritance_n not_o without_o trouble_n in_o the_o year_n 1480._o mahumet_n have_v conquer_v the_o island_n of_o archipelagus_n invade_v italy_n his_o bassa_n acomath_n take_v otranto_n and_o some_o other_o place_n all_o italy_n be_v in_o fear_n mahumet_n die_v and_o his_o son_n bajazeth_n be_v molest_v with_o civil_a war_n so_o italy_n be_v free_v in_o the_o year_n 1486._o frederick_n cause_v his_o son_n maximilian_n to_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o make_v several_a statute_n under_o great_a penalty_n against_o all_o that_o shall_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o germany_n the_o year_n 1492._o be_v remarkable_a first_o for_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o election_n of_o alexander_n the_o vi_o next_o for_o expel_v the_o moor_n out_o of_o spain_n by_o ferdinand_n king_n of_o castille_n above_o 700._o year_n after_o their_o first_o arrival_n it_o be_v write_v that_o 224000._o family_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v banish_v three_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o same_o ferdinand_n christopher_n columbus_n sail_v westward_o discover_v the_o isle_n azore_n as_o americus_n vespusius_n in_o the_o year_n 1499._o discover_v the_o west-indies_n which_o after_o he_o be_v call_v america_n pope_n alexander_n give_v that_o kingdom_n unto_o ferdinand_n when_o this_o gift_n be_v report_v unto_o artabaliba_n king_n of_o peru_n he_o say_v that_o pope_n must_v be_v a_o fool_n who_o give_v unto_o another_o what_o he_o never_o have_v or_o certain_o he_o be_v impudent_a and_o unjust_a who_o give_v another_o man_n land_n unto_o stranger_n and_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n as_o benzo_n &_o lopez_n do_v record_n when_o all_o the_o empire_n be_v in_o peace_n frederick_n die_v an._n 1493._o the_o reign_n of_o his_o son_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o next_o century_n chap._n iii_o of_o divers_a country_n 1._o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v all_o the_o strange_a eclipse_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n sign_n ominous_a sign_n which_o be_v record_v to_o have_v be_v in_o this_o century_n portend_v the_o wondrous_a darkness_n of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o these_o time_n as_o indeed_o it_o surpass_v all_o other_o since_o no_o age_n have_v see_v more_o ungodly_a pope_n nor_o great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o inundation_n of_o water_n the_o frequent_a pestilence_n and_o famine_n do_v also_o proclaim_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o the_o iniquity_n of_o man_n but_o the_o more_o god_n do_v strike_v the_o stithies_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o become_v the_o hard_a except_o a_o small_a number_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o ungodly_a multitude_n who_o therefore_o be_v have_v in_o reproach_n and_o be_v persecute_v 2._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n god_n make_v some_o preparation_n for_o a_o knowledge_n help_v of_o knowledge_n reformation_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o more_o which_o be_v two_o mighty_a help_n of_o knowledge_n first_o some_o greek_n come_v into_o italy_n to_o wit_n emanuel_n chrysoloras_n and_o argyropulus_fw-la two_o byzantine_n musurus_fw-la cretensis_n john_n laicaris_n theodor_n gaza_n george_n trapezuntius_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o greek_a language_n have_v scarce_o be_v hear_v in_o italy_n the_o space_n of_o 700._o year_n but_o then_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a school_n be_v multiply_v and_o they_o translate_v some_o greek_a father_n into_o latin_a as_o trapezuntius_fw-la translate_v some_o work_n of_o cyril_n alexandrin_n of_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n their_o disciple_n be_v leonard_n aretin_n guarin_n veronen_n pogius_n florentin_n philelphus_n etc._n etc._n in_o emulation_n of_o they_o be_v famous_a in_o the_o latin_a language_n laurentius_n valla_n flavius_n blondus_n donatus_n acciaiolus_n a_o florentine_a and_o many_o more_o and_o the_o year_n 1450._o be_v famous_a print_v first_o print_v for_o the_o excellent_a invention_n of_o print_v in_o strawsburg_n by_o a_o goldsmith_n john_n gutenberg_n who_o some_o do_v call_v johannes_n faustus_n this_o art_n as_o it_o be_v wondrous_a for_o invention_n so_o it_o be_v and_o be_v singular_o profitable_a for_o store_n of_o book_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v see_v and_o read_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n come_v to_o light_v history_n be_v make_v know_v time_n be_v compare_v truth_n be_v discern_v falsehood_n be_v detect_v etc._n etc._n before_o that_o time_n the_o rich-poor_a monk_n gather_v all_o the_o book_n into_o their_o cloister_n and_o few_o read_v they_o but_o other_o can_v not_o have_v they_o this_o be_v a_o great_a occasion_n of_o ignorance_n which_o thereafter_o be_v remove_v by_o use_n of_o printing_n 3._o several_a homily_n and_o treati●es_n come_v forth_o against_o the_o covetousness_n luxury_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o clark_n and_o monk_n herman_n ried_n in_o a_o book_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la &_o honestate_fw-la clericorum_fw-la say_v in_o these_o dangerous_a time_n be_v many_o clark_n whio_n make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o of_o reason_n they_o admit_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o despise_v the_o ancient_a canon_n as_o bernard_n have_v write_v unto_o eugenius_n they_o do_v hate_n and_o deride_v man_n of_o understanding_n and_o catholic_n because_o they_o espy_v the_o grievous_a vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o zeal_n speak_v against_o their_o unfaithfulness_n the_o clark_n call_v such_o man_n fantastic_a disturber_n of_o peace_n and_o man_n of_o erroneous_a conscience_n who_o be_v zealous_a to_o root_v out_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o who_o allege_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n these_o i_o say_v be_v check_v and_o revile_v by_o their_o own_o and_o other_o prelate_n so_o that_o at_o last_o they_o must_v even_o against_o their_o will_n be_v silent_a and_o dissemble_v so_o it_o be_v verify_v what_o st._n jerom_n say_v in_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la norma_fw-la vivendi_fw-la cap._n 5._o there_o be_v not_o so_o cruel_a a_o beast_n as_o a_o wicked_a priest_n for_o he_o can_v endure_v to_o be_v correct_v or_o hear_v the_o truth_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v full_a of_o wickedness_n then_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o
as_o may_v fall_v among_o the_o soldier_n in_o their_o march_n that_o none_o of_o they_o dare_v take_v a_o apple_n without_o the_o licence_n of_o the_o owner_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n the_o people_n be_v bewitch_v with_o such_o fair_a inducement_n do_v submit_v unto_o he_o as_o their_o prince_n doctor_n and_o lawgiver_n he_o deceive_v some_o by_o word_n and_o compel_v other_o with_o the_o sword_n unto_o subjection_n the_o persian_n as_o be_v touch_v be_v easy_o bring_v to_o his_o obedience_n when_o they_o prevail_v over_o christian_n they_o deal_v with_o they_o without_o mercy_n in_o jerusalem_n they_o show_v more_o than_o beastly_a cruelty_n in_o a_o church_n of_o caesarea_n they_o massacre_v above_o 7000._o christian_n they_o make_v cyprus_n once_o without_o one_o christian_n about_o the_o year_n 700._o they_o slay_v in_o isuaria_n 150000._o and_o keep_v 7000._o captive_n at_o that_o time_n homar_n their_o prince_n excuse_v all_o this_o cruelty_n with_o pretext_n that_o he_o do_v only_o pursue_v the_o worshipper_n of_o image_n for_o about_o that_o time_n image_n be_v frequent_a in_o christian_a church_n and_o the_o saracen_n can_v not_o look_v on_o a_o image_n for_o religion_n we_o may_v say_v then_o homar_n be_v the_o rod_n of_o god_n correct_v the_o idolatry_n and_o will_v worship_v of_o christian_n and_o the_o same_o image_n do_v give_v great_a advantage_n to_o this_o common_a enemy_n by_o dissension_n of_o christian_n as_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o century_n about_o the_o same_o time_n arise_v two_o several_a kingdom_n of_o the_o saracen_n the_o first_o in_o asia_n whereof_o the_o chief_a city_n be_v build_v by_o the_o ruin_n of_o babylon_n and_o be_v call_v baldac_n or_o baldacut_n a_o 630._o after_o two_o year_n mahumet_n be_v poison_v by_o albunar_a one_o of_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v experience_n of_o his_o prophecy_n for_o mahumet_n have_v say_v that_o within_o three_o day_n after_o his_o death_n he_o will_v rise_v again_o but_o when_o albunar_a have_v wait_v 12._o day_n he_o find_v his_o body_n tear_v by_o dog_n and_o gather_v his_o bone_n or_o what_o be_v remain_v and_o bury_v they_o in_o a_o pitcher_n at_o macha_n in_o persia_n he_o deliver_v other_o prophecy_n but_o his_o follower_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o find_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o not_o many_o year_n after_o the_o erection_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o egyptian_n be_v weary_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o send_v for_o the_o saracen_n unto_o their_o aid_n but_o it_o be_v to_o their_o great_a woe_n for_o the_o saracen_n make_v a_o prey_n of_o they_o and_o erect_v another_o kingdom_n in_o africa_n who_o seat_n be_v alcair_a or_o babylon_n in_o egypt_n in_o both_o kingdom_n the_o supreme_a governor_n both_o in_o policy_n and_o religion_n be_v call_v calipha_n and_o they_o rule_v the_o province_n by_o precedent_n who_o they_o call_v sultan_n or_o sultan_n who_o be_v also_o high-priest_n chap._n iu._n of_o britain_n 1._o the_o papish_n do_v brag_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o church_n church_n and_o that_o all_o country_n who_o ever_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v first_o convert_v to_o her_o faith_n by_o such_o as_o be_v precise_o send_v or_o at_o least_o have_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n in_o which_o they_o be_v convert_v this_o say_v they_o be_v so_o open_o set_v down_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o every_o country_n as_o no_o protestant_a be_v he_o never_o so_o impudent_a can_v without_o blush_a deny_v it_o so_o speak_v thomas_n hill_n a_o doctor_n of_o douai_n in_o his_o 4._o reason_n of_o his_o catholic_n religion_n if_o the_o like_a lie_n be_v not_o frequent_a among_o they_o it_o may_v seem_v a_o wonder_n how_o man_n can_v be_v so_o impudent_a if_o they_o but_o read_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o we_o have_v a_o conversion_n of_o nation_n without_o the_o mention_n of_o a_o church_n at_o rome_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v if_o they_o have_v read_v the_o recognition_n of_o clemens_n who_o some_o call_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o some_o call_v he_o the_o second_o and_o some_o the_o three_o all_o these_o book_n be_v concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n and_o yet_o in_o they_o be_v little_a or_o nothing_o of_o a_o church_n in_o rome_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o last_o book_n and_o neither_o be_v there_o one_o word_n of_o send_v teacher_n from_o rome_n into_o other_o nation_n so_o that_o many_o nation_n be_v convert_v before_o any_o christian_a church_n be_v at_o rome_n other_o nation_n can_v show_v by_o who_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n come_v unto_o they_o but_o for_o scot_n especial_o not_o of_o the_o old_a britan_n nor_o scot_n britan_n say_v they_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o gregory_n the_o i._o send_v augustine_n who_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o english_a and_o be_v not_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o britan_n before_o that_o time_n read_v the_o second_o apology_n of_o athanasius_n and_o in_o the_o first_o page_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o constantius_n time_n some_o from_o britan_n be_v at_o the_o great_a council_n in_o sardeis_n and_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n sect._n 8._o we_o have_v hear_v the_o testimony_n of_o jerom_n that_o from_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o britan_n the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n be_v equal_o patent_n and_o in_o other_o place_n he_o mention_v they_o and_o 200._o year_n before_o he_o tertullian_n against_o the_o jew_n show_v that_o the_o place_n of_o britan_n which_o be_v unaccessible_a unto_o the_o roman_n be_v subject_a unto_o christ_n and_o what_o place_n these_o be_v baronius_n in_o annal._n ad_fw-la a_o 186._o sect._n 6._o teach_v that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o roman_n do_v possess_v the_o south_n part_n of_o britan_n and_o adrian_n cause_v a_o wall_n to_o be_v make_v betwixt_o cart-den_n and_o dumbarton_n to_o be_v a_o partition_n between_o they_o and_o the_o scot_n but_o say_v baronius_n the_o britan_n who_o do_v possess_v what_o be_v on_o the_o north-side_n of_o the_o wall_n do_v often_o pass_v over_o and_o provoke_v the_o roman_n unto_o battle_n in_o the_o time_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n lucius_n king_n of_o south_n britan_n be_v a_o christian_a and_o baronius_n can_v deny_v but_o long_o before_o that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o britan_n as_o say_v he_o testatur_fw-la gilda_n sapiens_fw-la and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n donald_n king_n of_o scotland_n be_v a_o christian_a and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o dioclesian_n when_o the_o persecution_n be_v hot_a in_o the_o south_n part_n many_o christian_n take_v their_o refuge_n into_o the_o north_n part_n where_o the_o king_n crathilint_n receive_v they_o and_o for_o safety_n send_v many_o of_o they_o into_o the_o isle_n of_o man_n and_o there_o build_v a_o church_n unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n free_o it_o be_v true_a the_o south_n part_n do_v change_v their_o inhabitant_n for_o division_n fall_v among_o they_o the_o one_o party_n send_v for_o the_o saxon_n for_o their_o aid_n and_o these_o be_v heathen_n and_o subdue_v all_o the_o country_n except_o that_o which_o be_v now_o call_v south_n and_o north_n wales_n and_o that_o for_o their_o profaneness_n and_o contempt_n of_o religion_n as_o gildas_n testify_v in_o a_o little_a book_n de_fw-la excidio_fw-la britannico_fw-la which_o be_v in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patr._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr bigne_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 5._o about_o the_o year_n 600._o ethelbert_n have_v marry_v bertha_n gregory_n the_o i._o lib._n 9_o epist_n 59_o call_v her_o aldiberga_n a_o christian_a who_o bring_v with_o she_o lethard_n a_o preacher_n beda_n hist_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 25._o call_v he_o a_o bishop_n he_o preach_v in_o a_o church_n at_o canterbury_n call_v saint_n martin_n that_o have_v be_v long_a time_n before_o when_o augustine_n be_v send_v by_o gregory_n and_o come_v thither_o he_o stay_v in_o the_o isle_n of_o tenet_n until_o he_o know_v the_o king_n will_n beda_n ibid._n by_o mean_n of_o bertha_n licence_n be_v grant_v and_o he_o preach_v before_o the_o king_n after_o his_o conversion_n augustine_n have_v intelligence_n of_o the_o britan_n and_o send_v unto_o they_o and_o crave_v a_o meeting_n with_o they_o three_o of_o they_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o do_v speak_v at_o first_o fair_o and_o desire_v they_o to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o conversion_n of_o the_o heathen_n they_o answer_v we_o have_v our_o own_o bishop_n without_o their_o knowledge_n we_o may_v do_v nothing_o then_o by_o authority_n and_o procurement_n of_o the_o king_n he_o invit_v they_o to_o a_o synod_n at_o a_o place_n which_o from_o he_o be_v call_v austin-oke_n or_o
all_o sin_n so_o the_o regenerate_a in_o christ_n may_v live_v in_o this_o world_n without_o sin_n which_o sure_o belong_v not_o unto_o the_o estate_n of_o this_o present_a life_n but_o unto_o the_o blessedness_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o if_o it_o be_v say_v only_o that_o for_o the_o begin_n of_o grace_n which_o we_o attain_v by_o regeneration_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o receive_v the_o liberty_n of_o will_n which_o we_o lose_v in_o adam_n although_o nevertheless_o the_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v why_o be_v the_o most_o clear_a truth_n darken_v with_o so_o great_a ambiguity_n and_o confusion_n of_o word_n now_o how_o great_a absurdity_n be_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o we_o have_v free-well_a unto_o good_a be_v prevent_v and_o help_v ........_o as_o if_o after_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n than_o we_o begin_v to_o have_v as_o freewill_n unto_o good_a so_o freewill_n unto_o evil_n as_o if_o by_o that_o regeneration_n when_o we_o be_v preven_v and_o help_v by_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o good_a and_o when_o we_o be_v desert_v of_o the_o same_o grace_n we_o have_v freewill_n unto_o evil_n what_o reason_n or_o consequence_n of_o meaning_n can_v be_v here_o do_v the_o grace_n of_o that_o regeneration_n work_v this_o in_o we_o that_o from_o thence_o we_o get_v freewill_n as_o unto_o good_a so_o unto_o evil_a further_o if_o when_o we_o be_v renew_v in_o baptism_n we_o receive_v in_o christ_n the_o liberty_n of_o will_n that_o be_v so_o lose_v in_o adam_n do_v then_o only_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n prevence_n and_o help_v we_o or_o do_v the_o same_o grace_n as_o once_o it_o help_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v free_a unto_o good_a so_o leave_v we_o once_o that_o we_o be_v make_v free_a unto_o evil_n what_o be_v this_o so_o obscure_a and_o almost_o not_o preach_v of_o grace_n have_v it_o not_o be_v better_a to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o those_o sentence_n of_o the_o forenamed_a father_n which_o define_v this_o matter_n full_o and_o clear_o or_o that_o this_o definition_n have_v be_v frame_v in_o their_o word_n and_o plain_o be_v declare_v how_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n preven_v and_o help_v we_o that_o be_v whether_o once_o so_o great_a grace_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o in_o baptism_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o our_o life_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v implore_v and_o get_v daily_o and_o whether_o we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o for_o some_o good_a thing_n or_o for_o all_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n appear_v here_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o have_v be_v silent_a then_o to_o speak_v so_o fond_o of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n for_o we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n not_o only_o for_o a_o good_a work_n as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o faith_n without_o which_o grace_n we_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o and_o every_o good_a thing_n through_o every_o day_n we_o have_v need_n of_o it_o to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o a_o good_a will_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n to_o speak_v good_a and_o wholesome_a thing_n we_o have_v need_n of_o grace_n for_o all_o good_a way_n of_o good_a work_n concern_v can._n iii_o first_n they_o exhort_v iii_o can._n iii_o to_o keep_v peace_n and_o unity_n and_o to_o shun_v contention_n then_o they_o say_v behold_v one_o may_v think_v and_o say_v as_o former_o it_o have_v be_v think_v and_o say_v the_o apostle_n say_v not_o general_o and_o as_o they_o have_v add_v without_o exception_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v but_o especial_o concern_v they_o of_o who_o he_o have_v say_v before_o for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o when_o he_o say_v all_o he_o understand_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n even_o of_o all_o condition_n sex_n order_n what_o unconsequent_a or_o contrariety_n unto_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o this_o exposition_n likewise_o one_o may_v say_v as_o it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v say_v by_o some_o ancient_n that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o whole_a mankind_n what_o ill_a or_o danger_n have_v this_o exposition_n for_o he_o who_o think_v so_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o man_n do_v resist_v and_o go_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v and_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o speak_v diverse_o yet_o do_v agree_v faithful_o and_o unanimous_o that_o whether_o the_o apostle_n speak_v so_o or_o so_o yet_o no_o man_n be_v save_v but_o by_o the_o gracious_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o none_o be_v suffer_v to_o perish_v but_o in_o his_o just_a judgement_n certain_o this_o be_v manifest_a in_o that_o question_n that_o although_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n general_o and_o indefinite_o to_o be_v save_v yet_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o through_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o mercy_n he_o work_v the_o same_o in_o his_o will_n that_o both_o they_o have_v a_o will_n to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o be_v save_v to_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a work_n forth_o your_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o you_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o through_o the_o severity_n of_o his_o hide_a and_o just_a judgement_n he_o work_v not_o this_o save_a will_n but_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o will_n that_o because_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v damn_v in_o just_a punishment_n and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v indeed_o of_o they_o which_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o through_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o own_o unbelief_n will_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v of_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o the_o wicked_a who_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o who_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n unto_o who_o never_o a_o preacher_n be_v come_v who_o can_v no_o way_n believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v nor_o receive_v a_o preacher_n see_v none_o have_v be_v send_v unto_o they_o shall_v such_o therefore_o be_v damn_v because_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v who_o never_o can_v hear_v and_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o their_o other_o sin_n and_o especial_o for_o original_a sin_n wherein_o all_o have_v sin_v for_o it_o be_v not_o write_v in_o vain_a pour_v out_o thy_o wrath_n upon_o the_o nation_n which_o know_v thou_o not_o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v render_v vengeance_n in_o flame_a fire_n on_o they_o who_o know_v not_o god_n if_o one_o shall_v ask_v of_o those_o what_o have_v the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v in_o they_o who_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n what_o shall_v we_o answer_v will_v not_o a_o godly_a and_o prudent_a man_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v silent_a or_o certain_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n thy_o judgement_n be_v a_o great_a deep_a and_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o incomprehensible_a be_v his_o way_n concern_v can._n iu._n can._n iu._n iu._n they_o say_v in_o this_o new_a question_n three_o question_n be_v propound_v first_o that_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v who_o nature_n be_v not_o assume_v in_o christ_n of_o this_o question_n we_o hold_v thus_o that_o the_o assume_v of_o man_n nature_n by_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n of_o beginning_n ex_fw-la necessitate_v incipiendi_fw-la but_o be_v only_o of_o his_o power_n and_o grace_n so_o his_o flesh_n descend_v through_o all_o generation_n so_o he_o be_v true_o bear_v very_a man_n of_o they_o that_o what_o he_o please_v by_o show_v mercy_n and_o heal_v and_o redeem_v he_o may_v thereof_o assume_v and_o reject_v what_o he_o please_v or_o not_o so_o in_o that_o unspeakable_a mystery_n of_o his_o incarnation_n he_o merciful_o do_v assume_v his_o elect_a who_o he_o come_v to_o redeem_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o who_o he_o do_v judge_v unworthy_a of_o that_o mercy_n and_o redemption_n he_o leave_v they_o out_o of_o that_o marvellou_fw-mi susception_n let_v we_o therefore_o acknowledge_v true_o that_o the_o susception_n of_o human_a nature_n in_o christ_n have_v leave_v unbeliever_n void_a of_o this_o mercy_n and_o that_o he_o have_v bestow_v it_o only_o on_o they_o that_o they_o have_v common_a
they_o which_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o he_o nor_o will_v ever_o believe_v as_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v matth._n 20_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v ..._o to_o give_v his_o soul_n in_o redemption_n for_o many_o 4._o that_o he_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o almighty_a god_n save_v who_o he_o will_v and_o that_o none_o at_o all_o can_v be_v save_v but_o who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o that_o all_o be_v save_v who_o he_o will_v save_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o his_o will_n those_o be_v save_v whosoever_o be_v not_o save_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v whatsoever_o the_o lord_n will_v he_o do_v that_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n and_o say_v prudent_a although_o there_o be_v some_o other_o thing_n wherein_o he_o have_v satisfy_v and_o subscribe_v in_o which_o be_v condemn_v in_o pelagius_n the_o church_n have_v universal_o consent_v yet_o these_o be_v against_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n clear_v from_o his_o froward_a exposition_n by_o the_o apostolical_a see_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o bless_a aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o of_o augustine_n with_o other_o 214_o bishop_n and_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n by_o many_o both_o epistle_n and_o book_n all_o the_o church_n to_o day_n rejoice_v in_o confess_v preach_v hold_v and_o shall_v hold_v this_o epistle_n of_o prudentius_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o tome_fw-mi of_o the_o french_a counsel_n and_o by_o it_o we_o may_v see_v not_o only_o his_o mind_n but_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n as_o he_o affirm_v although_o history_n do_v not_o express_v whether_o aeneas_n do_v subscribe_v these_o article_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o 99_o epistle_n of_o lupus_n ferarien_n where_o he_o commend_v this_o aeneas_n and_o say_v that_o prudentius_n with_o the_o other_o bishop_n do_v confirm_v his_o ordination_n by_o authority_n of_o lotharius_n a_o synod_n be_v hold_v an._n 855._o at_o valentia_n the_o canon_n thereof_o follow_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o add_v the_o word_n of_o baronius_n concern_v it_o general_o say_v the_o bishop_n think_v good_a to_o bring_v no_o other_o thing_n into_o the_o church_n than_o what_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o faithful_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n have_v in_o all_o sincerity_n teach_v former_o in_o africa_n in_o the_o council_n at_o carthage_n and_o in_o france_n in_o the_o council_n at_o arausicane_n whereunto_o we_o shall_v cleave_v in_o all_o point_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o godly_a be_v save_v no_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o wicked_a be_v condemn_v for_o their_o own_o iniquity_n and_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o perish_v because_o as_o some_o say_v they_o can_v not_o be_v good_a but_o because_o they_o will_v not_o then_o he_o show_v that_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n be_v send_v unto_o hincmar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v by_o writing_n condemn_v these_o error_n but_o vsser_n tax_v baronius_n that_o he_o have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n slender_o and_o from_o the_o writing_n of_o hincmar_n and_o from_o act_n of_o synod_n convince_v he_o especial_o he_o declare_v from_o a_o book_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o they_o of_o lion_n concern_v the_o five_o canon_n of_o this_o synod_n which_o in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n think_v the_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n to_o be_v that_o in_o the_o reprobate_n remain_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o the_o first_o transgression_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o elect_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n also_o he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 856_o in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n charles_n the_o bald_n do_v call_v a_o synod_n at_o bonoile_n by_o paris_n and_o another_o in_o september_n at_o nielph_n where_o he_o give_v unto_o hincmar_n the_o article_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o valentia_n and_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o other_o in_o favour_n of_o gotteschalk_n that_o hincmar_n shall_v answer_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o after_o three_o year_n hincmar_n do_v return_v a_o great_a book_n of_o god_n predestination_n and_o of_o man_n freewill_n as_o flodoard_v show_v hist_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 13_o and_o that_o the_o adverse_a party_n be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o that_o great_a volumn_n neither_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n lessen_v and_o therefore_o an._n 859_o charles_n call_v another_o synod_n in_o audemantunno_n lingonum_fw-la where_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o god_n people_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o valentian_n synod_n be_v voice_v and_o confirm_v again_o and_o proclaim_v only_o in_o the_o five_o canon_n they_o express_v not_o the_o four_o article_n because_o they_o perceive_v hincmar_n be_v offend_v by_o so_o express_v condemn_v they_o as_o if_o they_o thereby_o have_v neglect_v the_o limit_n and_o law_n of_o charity_n and_o they_o do_v add_v the_o name_n of_o john_n scot_n unto_o the_o nineteen_o article_n this_o synod_n be_v call_v lingonensis_n in_o council_n gall._n tom_n 3._o after_o 14_o day_n be_v a_o more_o frequent_a synod_n of_o twelve_o province_n at_o saponaria_n a_o village_n of_o the_o city_n of_o tullen_a where_o be_v king_n charles_n and_o his_o nephew_n lotharius_n and_o charles_n son_n of_o the_o emperor_n lotharius_n there_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o former_a synod_n and_o the_o carisiac_a article_n be_v read_v again_o and_o again_o great_a contention_n be_v between_o remigius_n and_o hincmar_n with_o their_o follower_n the_o one_o plead_v for_o and_o the_o other_o against_o the_o article_n of_o gotteschalk_n but_o as_o hincmar_n write_v in_o a_o epistle_n dedicatory_a unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a the_o stir_n be_v calm_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o archbishop_n remigius_n exhort_v they_o all_o to_o bring_v unto_o the_o next_o synod_n the_o book_n of_o the_o catholic_n doctor_n and_o as_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o agree_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a and_o catholic_n doctrine_n all_o shall_v hold_v together_o unanimous_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n that_o it_o be_v so_o soon_o close_v because_o of_o the_o murmur_n in_o the_o country_n all_o this_o time_n gotteschalk_n be_v still_o in_o prison_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o haultvillier_n whence_o he_o send_v forth_o first_o a_o short_a confession_n and_o then_o a_o large_a one_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o latter_a he_o crave_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o free_a synod_n wherein_o truth_n may_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o all_o and_o error_n altogether_o take_v away_o and_o he_o lament_v that_o for_o baseness_n of_o his_o person_n truth_n be_v despise_v and_o his_o adversary_n follow_v not_o charity_n and_o refuse_v verity_n only_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v victorious_a now_o of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v read_v concern_v his_o confession_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o both_o party_n i_o gather_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o great_a controversy_n be_v concern_v the_o predestination_n of_o the_o wicked_a unto_o punishment_n howbeit_o there_o be_v also_o some_o difference_n concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o conversion_n or_o of_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n and_o because_o hincmar_n in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o pr●destinatians_n whence_o be_v the_o word_n pr●destinatians_n pope_n nicolaus_n and_o semipelagian_o make_v mention_n of_o heretic_n who_o they_o call_v praedestinati_fw-la or_o praedestinatiani_n here_o i_o add_v concern_v that_o name_n that_o the_o first_o who_o mention_v it_o be_v he_o who_o write_v the_o continuation_n of_o ierom_n chronicle_n for_o he_o about_o the_o 24_o year_n of_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n write_v say_v at_o this_o time_n begin_v the_o heresy_n of_o praedestinati_fw-la which_o have_v the_o beginning_n from_o augustine_n so_o it_o be_v express_o say_v vsser_n in_o histor_n gotte_n cap._n 2._o in_o two_o old_a manuscript_n one_o in_o the_o king_n bibliotheke_n and_o another_o in_o the_o benedictines_n at_o cambridge_n although_o in_o the_o print_a book_n it_o be_v not_o say_v from_o augustine_n but_o from_o the_o book_n of_o augustine_n be_v ill_o understand_v and_o certain_o these_o word_n of_o hincmar_n be_v frivolous_a since_o pope_n celestine_n do_v not_o write_v against_o such_o a_o heresy_n but_o against_o the_o pelagian_o as_o be_v clear_a in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n and_o he_o do_v approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o prosper_v in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o augustine_n which_o and_o the_o epistle_n of_o celestine_n be_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n write_v say_v many_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o the_o city_n massily_n think_v that_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o your_o holiness_n against_o the_o pelagian_a heretic_n whatsoever_o you_o
some_o word_n do_v follow_v geo._n cassander_n in_o liturgica_n say_v at_o the_o first_o the_o mass_n be_v say_v otherwise_o then_o now_o ....._o and_o it_o be_v not_o do_v more_o holy_o than_o it_o be_v before_o when_o it_o be_v hallow_v with_o the_o only_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o with_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o from_o walafrid_n strabo_n he_o say_v all_o which_o be_v now_o do_v with_o a_o multitude_n of_o prayer_n lesson_n song_n and_o consecration_n the_o apostle_n and_o those_o who_o next_o follow_v they_o do_v as_o be_v think_v with_o prayer_n and_o remembrance_n of_o the_o lord_n suffering_n even_o as_o he_o command_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v in_o the_o next_o time_n when_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v the_o mass_n be_v do_v and_o other_o thing_n be_v add_v at_o diverse_a time_n by_o the_o pope_n gelasius_n and_o gregorius_n 3._o when_o the_o sacrament_n begin_v to_o be_v term_v a_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v uncertain_a but_o this_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v not_o call_v proper_o sacrifice_n a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n a_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o pure_a primitive_a church_n especial_o in_o the_o time_n of_o justine_n martyr_n lactantius_n firmian_n and_o augustine_n for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o justine_n the_o pagan_n do_v revile_v the_o christian_n and_o call_v they_o atheist_n because_o they_o offer_v not_o sacrifice_v nor_o incense_v unto_o their_o god_n justine_n in_o apolog._n 2._o answer_v they_o do_v offer_v such_o sacrifice_n as_o they_o know_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o to_o wit_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n as_o for_o the_o creature_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o the_o sustentation_n of_o man_n we_o keep_v they_o for_o the_o use_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a but_o we_o burn_v they_o not_o with_o fire_n lactantius_n have_v the_o same_o occasion_n in_o institut_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 24_o &_o 25_o and_o so_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 10._o cap._n 4._o but_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o have_v any_o syllable_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o of_o the_o lord_n body_n on_o the_o altar_n nevertheless_o augustine_n in_o enchirid_n cap._n 110._o and_o elsewhere_o and_o cyprian_a have_v call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n yet_o not_o proper_o or_o but_o figurative_o to_o wit_n because_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n and_o remembrance_n of_o that_o true_a and_o only_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v by_o christ_n cyprian_n epist_n 63._o ordin_fw-fr pammel_n so_o speak_v the_o gloss_n on_o gratian_n for_o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o consecr_n lib._n 2._o cap._n quid_fw-la sit_fw-la out_o of_o gregory_n the_o great_a though_o christ_n live_v immortal_o die_v not_o now_o yet_o in_o this_o sacrament_n he_o die_v and_o his_o flesh_n suffer_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n the_o gloss_n add_v that_o be_v his_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v represent_v so_o do_v chrysostom_n in_o heb._n hom_n 17_o and_o augustin_n de_fw-fr verb._n dom._n ser_n 28._o speak_v and_o many_o other_o say_v we_o offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n do_v offer_v or_o rather_o we_o offer_v the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n so_o also_o teach_v lombard_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 12._o b._n g._n christ_n die_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o there_o he_o be_v offer_v but_o he_o be_v offer_v daily_o in_o the_o sacrament_n because_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v once_o do_v and_o because_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n representation_n and_o remembrance_n of_o that_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o holy_a oblation_n on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n at_o some_o time_n also_o the_o ancient_n call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n because_o of_o the_o offering_n which_o the_o people_n bring_v when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n cyprian_n the_o oper_n &_o eleemos_fw-la say_v thou_o who_o be_v rich_a come_v into_o the_o church_n without_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o take_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o poor_a have_v offer_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 27._o have_v the_o like_a word_n from_o irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 32_o acknowledge_v that_o those_o father_n speak_v so_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o the_o people_n offer_v and_o alcwin_n de_fw-fr divin_fw-fr offic_n at_o the_o word_n sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la say_v the_o priest_n exhort_v the_o people_n as_o if_o he_o say_v now_o when_o you_o be_v sufficient_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o apostolical_a and_o evangelical_n precept_n direct_v your_o heart_n from_o earthly_a care_n upward_o unto_o the_o lord_n that_o i_o may_v be_v able_a to_o offer_v worthy_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o you_o have_v offer_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n so_o whereas_o the_o ancient_n do_v most_o usual_o abstain_v from_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n and_o sacrifice_n term_v those_o table_n and_o eucharist_n afterward_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n the_o pastor_n do_v adventure_v upon_o a_o great_a liberty_n of_o word_n not_o doubt_v to_o be_v sound_o understand_v by_o catholic_n hearer_n but_o because_o the_o degenerate_v age_n have_v wrest_v these_o word_n to_o a_o proper_a signification_n clean_o cotrary_a to_o the_o first_o intention_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v think_v amiss_o in_o they_o who_o contain_v themselves_o now_o within_o the_o more_o ancient_a restraint_n and_o be_v content_a with_o the_o first_o term_n since_o the_o other_o have_v occasion_v that_o intolerable_a error_n of_o the_o real_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o mass_n to_o the_o end_n this_o may_v be_v more_o evident_a i_o shall_v repeat_v the_o sacrifice_n the_o original_n of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n custom_n of_o this_o matter_n from_o the_o beginning_n chrysostom_n on_o 1_o cor._n 11._o hom_n 27._o say_v as_o in_o the_o three_o thousand_o who_o at_o first_o do_v believe_v they_o do_v all_o eat_v together_o and_o they_o do_v possess_v all_o thing_n in_o common_a so_o also_o it_o be_v when_o the_o apostle_n write_v this_o yet_o not_o so_o certain_o but_o that_o some_o doubt_v of_o the_o communion_n be_v remain_v and_o descend_v unto_o posterity_n and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o some_o be_v poor_a and_o some_o be_v rich_a they_o do_v not_o give_v all_o thing_n in_o community_n but_o they_o make_v the_o common_a table_n on_o the_o appoint_a day_n as_o be_v decent_a and_o the_o collection_n be_v do_v after_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o all_o come_v to_o a_o common_a feast_n and_o the_o dish_n be_v carry_v by_o the_o honest_a poor_a one_o and_o they_o who_o have_v nothing_o be_v invite_v by_o they_o and_o they_o sit_v down_o all_o together_o but_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n this_o custom_n go_v away_o for_o by_o this_o division_n it_o come_v that_o some_o do_v adjoin_v themselves_o in_o one_o company_n and_o some_o in_o another_o and_o they_o say_v i_o be_o he_o and_o i_o be_o he_o as_o the_o apostle_n amend_v this_o say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n justine_n near_o the_o end_n of_o his_o great_a apology_n say_v let_v the_o rich_a man_n if_o they_o please_v every_o one_o bestow_v as_o they_o will_v and_o let_v that_o which_o be_v bring_v be_v lay_v down_o beside_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n when_o the_o first_o custom_n be_v leave_v off_o they_o bring_v a_o quantity_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o of_o the_o first_o corn_n or_o raisin_n whereof_o so_o much_o be_v take_v as_o do_v serve_v for_o the_o element_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v eat_v by_o the_o believer_n as_o in_o a_o feast_n and_o some_o be_v send_v unto_o sick_a person_n or_o diststribute_v among_o the_o poor_a when_o the_o church_n have_v more_o liberty_n and_o become_v more_o wealthy_a as_o in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o oblation_n be_v rich_a and_o a_o part_n thereof_o be_v appoint_v for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o preacher_n according_a to_o that_o of_o jerom_n they_o who_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n be_v sustain_v by_o the_o offering_n at_o the_o altar_n then_o the_o voluntary_a offering_n be_v call_v sacrifice_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o presbyter_n do_v consecrate_v they_o by_o prayer_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o liturgy_n where_o they_o say_v o_o lord_n we_o thy_o servant_n and_o also_o thy_o holy_a people_n be_v mindful_a of_o the_o bless_a suffering_n and_o resurrection_n and_o the_o glorious_a ascension_n of_o christ_n thy_o son_n our_o lord_n god_n do_v offer_n unto_o thy_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n out_o of_o thy_o gift_n this_o pure_a sacrifice_n ...._o upon_o which_o thing_n it_o may_v please_v thou_o to_o look_v with_o a_o favourable_a and_o gracious_a eye_n and_o to_o
begin_v to_o profess_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o poet_n be_v true_a at_o last_o he_o be_v challenge_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o patriarch_n peter_n but_o many_o in_o italy_n sardinia_n and_o in_o spain_n follow_v the_o same_o impiety_n and_o be_v punish_v some_o with_o the_o sword_n and_o some_o with_o fire_n rodolp_n histo_n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o 3._o berno_n excellent_a in_o all_o learning_n be_v set_v over_o the_o augianes_n anno_fw-la 1008._o he_o write_v many_o book_n in_o marc._n evang._n sect_n 3._o he_o say_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v hang_v the_o armour_n of_o our_o salvation_n serm._n de_fw-fr concor_fw-fr offic_n c._n 5._o our_o weakness_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o god_n as_o lazarus_n can_v not_o rise_v by_o himself_o serm._n de_fw-fr ascend_v dom._n christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o elect_a be_v his_o member_n at_o that_o time_n live_v oecumenius_n and_o olympiodorus_n two_o famous_a greek_a writer_n guthet_n bishop_n of_o prague_n be_v famous_a for_o learning_n and_o holiness_n and_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o faith_n platin._n in_o benedict_n 8._o and_o in_o benedict_n 9_o he_o say_v gerard_n a_o venetian_a and_o bishop_n of_o hungary_n a_o good_a and_o learned_a man_n suffer_v martyrdom_n the_o infidel_n tie_v he_o to_o the_o wheel_n of_o a_o cart_n and_o let_v it_o run_v from_o the_o top_n of_o a_o high_a mountain_n so_o that_o he_o be_v all_o crush_v yet_o he_o suffer_v it_o with_o joy_n 4._o fulbert_n bishop_n of_o charty_n or_o carnatum_fw-la be_v a_o learned_a man_n sundry_a sermon_n and_o treatise_n that_o be_v among_o the_o work_n of_o st._n augustine_n be_v say_v to_o be_v he_o he_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o adeodatus_n wherein_o he_o first_o reprove_v a_o gross_a opinion_n of_o some_o man_n who_o hold_v that_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v naked_a sign_n then_o he_o prove_v that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v consider_v as_o mere_a and_o outward_a sign_n but_o by_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o invisible_a virtue_n of_o mystery_n the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v call_v say_v he_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v esteem_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o sight_n to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o spirit_n and_o mind_n and_o not_o as_o sight_n of_o body_n see_v only_o by_o faith_n behold_v the_o secret_a of_o this_o powerful_a mystery_n for_o what_o seem_v outward_o bread_n and_o wine_n now_o inward_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v encourage_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o true_a master_n when_o we_o communicate_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o confess_v bold_o that_o we_o be_v transfound_v into_o his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o taste_v and_o see_v how_o savoury_a that_o meat_n be_v unless_o i_o be_v mistake_v it_o taste_v like_o angel_n food_n not_o that_o thou_o can_v discern_v it_o with_o thy_o mouth_n but_o may_v taste_v it_o with_o thy_o inward_a affection_n open_v the_o mouth_n of_o faith_n enlarge_v the_o hope_n and_o the_o bowel_n of_o love_n and_o receive_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n even_o the_o food_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n from_o faith_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n proceed_v the_o taste_n of_o the_o inward_a food_n while_o certain_o by_o the_o infusion_n or_o preception_n of_o the_o gracious_a eucharist_n christ_n flow_v into_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o communicate_v soul_n when_o a_o godly_a soul_n receive_v into_o her_o chaste_a corner_n in_o that_o form_n wherewith_o she_o behold_v he_o present_a with_o she_o under_o remembrance_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o as_o the_o spirit_n reveal_v to_o wit_n as_o a_o infant_n lie_v in_o his_o mother_n bosom_n or_o offer_v upon_o the_o alrar_n of_o the_o cross_n or_o lie_v in_o the_o grave_n or_o very_o have_v trample_v death_n under_o foot_n and_o rise_v again_o or_o carry_v high_a in_o glory_n above_o the_o heaven_n according_a to_o which_o form_n christ_n enter_v into_o the_o acceptable_a habitation_n of_o the_o communicant_a and_o refresh_v his_o soul_n with_o so_o many_o to_o speak_v so_o several_a bliss_n as_o be_v the_o way_n that_o the_o eye_n of_o holy_a meditation_n can_v behold_v he_o neither_o let_v it_o seem_v a_o vain_a thing_n unto_o thou_o that_o we_o say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o behold_v of_o a_o desirous_a soul_n christ_n be_v find_v within_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o communicant_a see_v thou_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o our_o father_n sojourn_v through_o the_o wilderness_n and_o be_v refresh_v with_o angel_n food_n to_o who_o a_o fertile_a rain_n bring_v meat_n of_o one_o colour_n but_o of_o divers_a taste_n and_o according_a to_o the_o appetite_n of_o every_o one_o it_o give_v sundry_a delight_n of_o taste_n that_o whatsoever_o their_o appetit_fw-la do_v covet_v the_o secret_a dispensation_n of_o the_o giver_n do_v furnish_v the_o same_o to_o who_o their_o gust_n give_v what_o their_o eye_n can_v not_o see_v because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v and_o another_o which_o be_v take_v therefore_o wonder_v thou_o no_o more_o what_o manna_n under_o the_o law_n do_v signify_v by_o shadow_n the_o reveal_v verity_n of_o christ_n body_n lay_v open_a in_o which_o body_n the_o divine_a majesty_n condescend_v merciful_o unto_o our_o weakness_n that_o with_o what_o sort_n of_o punishment_n man_n body_n be_v punish_v he_o shall_v taste_v the_o same_o in_o his_o body_n sensible_o but_o god_n perform_v this_o in_o the_o breast_n as_o he_o say_v himself_o he_o who_o come_v of_o i_o shall_v live_v by_o i_o now_o therefore_o the_o scruple_n or_o doubt_v be_v to_o be_v remove_v see_v he_o who_o be_v the_o giver_n be_v a_o witness_n of_o the_o truth_n then_o he_o illustrate_v the_o same_o by_o comparison_n of_o a_o baptise_a man_n who_o albeit_o outward_o he_o be_v the_o same_o he_o be_v before_o yet_o inward_o he_o be_v another_o be_v make_v great_a than_o himself_o by_o increase_n of_o invisible_a quantity_n that_o be_v of_o save_a grace_n etc._n etc._n here_o be_v no_o word_n of_o substancial_a change_n of_o the_o element_n the_o bread_n be_v still_o bread_n but_o we_o find_v two_o other_o change_n to_o wit_n the_o faithful_a be_v transfound_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o christ_n be_v infound_v into_o the_o habitation_n of_o a_o faithful_a soul_n yet_o so_o that_o christ_n body_n remain_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n faith_n behold_v christ_n present_a or_o lie_v in_o his_o mother_n bosom_n and_o die_v and_o rise_v and_o ascend_v and_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o gracious_a habitation_n of_o a_o faithful_a communicant_a and_o refresh_v he_o so_o many_o way_n as_o be_v say_v here_o also_o we_o see_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v as_o the_o substance_n of_o he_o who_o be_v baptize_v remain_v albeit_o inward_o he_o be_v another_o biblioth_n part_n de_fw-fr le_fw-fr bigne_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 3._o 5._o berengarius_fw-la deacon_n of_o st._n maurice_n in_o angiers_n be_v his_o disciple_n who_o hear_v math._n parisiensis_fw-la call_v he_o archiepisc_n turonen_fw-mi a_o contrary_a error_n unto_o the_o former_a be_v broach_v in_o his_o day_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n substantial_o or_o proper_o berengarius_fw-la i_o say_v hear_v this_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v only_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o these_o element_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o follow_v the_o occasion_n of_o this_o controversy_n at_o that_o time_n be_v write_v by_o guitmund_n in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o berengarius_fw-la to_o wit_n when_o lanfrank_a abbot_n of_o becheloin_a in_o normandy_n be_v a_o boy_n in_o italy_n it_o happen_v that_o a_o priest_n as_o he_o say_v say_v mass_n find_v very_a flesh_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o very_a blood_n upon_o the_o chalice_n he_o burn_v to_o take_v they_o and_o immediate_o declare_v the_o matter_n unto_o the_o bishop_n who_o assemble_v with_o more_o bishop_n ordain_v that_o that_o flesh_n and_o that_o chalice_n with_o the_o blood_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o that_o altar_n for_o ever_o as_o a_o most_o worshipful_a relic_n from_o this_o deceive_a impostor_n many_o be_v move_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o element_n not_o only_o sacramental_o as_o the_o father_n speak_v but_o substantial_o berengarius_fw-la write_v and_o preach_v against_o this_o capernaitis_n error_n and_o therefore_o adelman_n bishop_n of_o brixia_n write_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o salute_v he_o his_o holy_a and_o belove_a brother_n and_o condisciple_n under_o fulbert_n bishop_n of_o carnatum_fw-la then_o he_o show_v he_o hear_v it_o report_v that_o berengarius_fw
new_a waldenses_n and_o sometime_o he_o call_v they_o german_a waldenses_n to_o come_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reform_a bishop_n ridley_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o london_n who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n ann._n 1555._o give_v they_o this_o testimony_n those_o waldenses_n be_v man_n of_o far_o more_o learning_n godliness_n soberness_n and_o understanding_n of_o god_n word_n than_o i_o will_v have_v think_v they_o to_o have_v be_v in_o that_o time_n before_o i_o do_v read_v their_o book_n if_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v publish_v in_o our_o english_a tongue_n heretofore_o i_o suppose_v sure_o great_a good_a may_v have_v come_v to_o christ_n church_n thereby_o the_o letter_n of_o martyr_n print_v ann._n 1564._o pag._n 78._o hier._n zanchius_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v when_o religion_n decay_v in_o the_o east_n god_n establish_v it_o in_o the_o valley_n of_o angronia_n and_o merindol_n tom._n 4._o co_fw-la 720._o and_o have_v see_v their_o confession_n he_o say_v of_o it_o in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o crato_n i_o read_v attentive_o and_o diligent_o with_o much_o delight_n the_o confession_n of_o the_o brethren_n waldenses_n which_o thou_o send_v unto_o i_o for_o i_o see_v not_o only_o all_o the_o doctrine_n agreeable_a unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o i_o think_v also_o i_o see_v the_o sincere_a and_o true_o christian_a godliness_n of_o their_o heart_n for_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v this_o only_a scope_n in_o their_o confession_n not_o to_o destroy_v all_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o arrian_n do_v but_o to_o edify_v their_o church_n according_a to_o the_o true_a and_o apostolical_a and_o so_o the_o save_a rule_n of_o godliness_n cast_v away_o what_o shall_v be_v cast_v away_o and_o retain_v what_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v which_o be_v the_o right_a and_o lawful_a form_n of_o reformation_n oh_o that_o we_o be_v all_o prone_a unto_o the_o same_o study_n after_o the_o example_n of_o these_o good_a brethren_n george_n abbot_n contra_fw-la d._n hill_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o reason_n sect_n 29._o say_v for_o this_o cause_n bellarmin_n in_o praefa_fw-la generali_fw-la controver_n join_v these_o together_o as_o heretic_n the_o berengarian_o petrobrusian_o waldenses_n albigenses_n wiclenist_n hussites_n lutheran_n etc._n etc._n and_o lewes_n richcom_n another_o of_o that_o society_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o mass_n against_o the_o lord_n plessis_n say_v that_o the_o minister_n for_o confirm_v their_o figurative_a sense_n in_o this_o be_v my_o body_n have_v none_o for_o their_o doctor_n their_o ancient_n and_o their_o father_n but_o berengarius_fw-la zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n carolstad_n wicleff_n the_o albigenses_n and_o the_o waldenses_n the_o waldenses_n then_o say_v abbot_z and_o albigenses_n be_v we_o by_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o of_o these_o be_v no_o small_a company_n for_o as_o du_fw-fr haillan_n hist_o lib._n 12._o in_o the_o life_n of_o philip_n iii_o king_n of_o france_n speak_v be_v drive_v from_o lion_n they_o withdraw_v themselves_o into_o lombardie_n where_o they_o so_o multiply_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v spread_v through_o italy_n and_o come_v as_o far_o as_o sicily_n as_o the_o same_o author_n write_v philippus_n augustus_n come_v to_o his_o kingdom_n an._n 1180._o which_o be_v now_o more_o than_o 400._o year_n since_o and_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v that_o the_o albigenses_n do_v so_o increase_v in_o france_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o prince_n be_v afraid_a of_o their_o number_n he_o who_o read_v the_o story_n of_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o be_v report_v to_o have_v hold_v many_o gross_a wicked_a and_o absurd_a opinion_n mingle_v with_o their_o true_a doctrine_n but_o du_fw-fr haillan_n the_o best_a and_o most_o judicious_a chronicler_n of_o france_n and_o no_o partial_a witness_n on_o our_o behalf_n since_o his_o profession_n touch_v religion_n be_v such_o that_o he_o be_v employ_v to_o write_v that_o story_n by_o henry_n iii_o have_v not_o so_o little_a wit_n but_o that_o he_o perceive_v these_o imputation_n to_o be_v lay_v on_o they_o in_o odium_fw-la and_o of_o purpose_n to_o procure_v their_o defamation_n see_v how_o wise_o he_o speak_v truth_n and_o yet_o so_o touch_v it_o that_o his_o fellow_n may_v not_o just_o be_v offend_v at_o his_o word_n although_o say_v he_o those_o albigenses_n have_v evil_a opinion_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o those_o do_v not_o stir_v up_o the_o hate_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o great_a prince_n against_o they_o so_o much_o as_o their_o liberty_n of_o speech_n do_v wherewith_o they_o use_v to_o blame_v the_o vice_n and_o dissoluteness_n of_o these_o prince_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n yea_o to_o tax_v the_o vice_n and_o action_n of_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n which_o bring_v they_o into_o universal_a hatred_n and_o which_o charge_v they_o with_o more_o evil_a opinion_n than_o they_o have_v so_o far_o abbot_n from_o haillan_n it_o can_v therefore_o be_v ignorance_n so_o much_o as_o perverseness_n of_o the_o papist_n when_o they_o glory_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o religion_n without_o opposition_n and_o upbraid_v we_o with_o late_a original_n they_o can_v deny_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v old_a than_o luther_n and_o according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o beforenamed_n reynerius_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o waldenses_n be_v even_o from_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o clear_v that_o which_o du_fw-fr haillan_n say_v concern_v their_o tax_v the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n i_o shall_v show_v out_o of_o their_o apology_n which_o the_o waldenses_n of_o bohem_n write_v unto_o their_o king_n ladislaus_n about_o the_o year_n 1509._o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o first_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o they_o say_v we_o wish_v your_o majesty_n know_v for_o what_o cause_n we_o do_v long_o ago_o forsake_v that_o separation_n the_o occasion_n of_o their_o separation_n roman_a crew_n true_o the_o execrable_a wickedness_n of_o the_o prelate_n by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o work_n it_o be_v to_o sow_v discord_n and_o contention_n among_o brethren_n compel_v we_o to_o leave_v they_o for_o they_o through_o blind_a malice_n and_o insolent_a pride_n of_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v deboach_v one_o against_o another_o and_o despise_v the_o law_n of_o peace_n &_o ecclesiastical_a love_n and_o they_o be_v void_a of_o all_o humanity_n do_v rattle_v one_o against_o another_o public_o not_o only_o with_o scurvy_a word_n but_o reproachful_a &_o contumelious_a writing_n and_o be_v shameless_o stir_v up_o one_o against_o another_o like_a atheist_n they_o forsake_v the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a key_n wholesome_a truth_n religious_a worship_n gracious_a piety_n sound_a faith_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o adversary_n so_o that_o albeit_o many_o have_v write_v against_o they_o yet_o their_o testimony_n be_v contrary_a as_o for_o the_o first_o he_o sheweth_z from_o m._n freher_n in_o bohem._n rer_n hist_o print_a at_o hanove_n pag._n 231._o the_o leonist_n be_v chaste_a and_o pag._n 232._o they_o eschew_v whatsoever_o thing_n be_v filthy_a 2._o in_o the_o same_o place_n freher_n say_v in_o their_o language_n they_o be_v spare_v they_o eschew_v lie_n swear_v and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v filthy_a so_o that_o they_o do_v forbid_v all_o swear_n in_o common_a talk_n or_o for_o light_a cause_n which_o be_v frequent_a in_o these_o day_n say_v he_o there_o and_o reynerius_n in_o summa_fw-la de_fw-fr catarrh_n &_o leonist_n print_a at_o paris_n an._n 1548._o say_v they_o dispense_v with_o oath_n for_o eschew_v death_n hence_o it_o appear_v they_o grant_v that_o in_o some_o case_n a_o oath_n be_v lawful_a but_o in_o that_o he_o add_v for_o eschew_v death_n it_o be_v but_o a_o misinterpretation_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o what_o we_o have_v hear_v from_o aen._n silvius_n and_o naucler_n that_o they_o hold_v no_o deadly_a sin_n shall_v be_v tolerate_v even_o for_o eschew_v etc._n etc._n 3._o the_o abovenamed_a history_n pag._n 222._o say_v when_o a_o heresiarch_n a_o glover_n in_o cheron_n be_v lead_v unto_o death_n he_o say_v you_o do_v well_o to_o condemn_v we_o now_o for_o if_o our_o estate_n be_v not_o bear_v down_o we_o will_v do_v unto_o the_o clerk_n and_o monk_n as_o they_o do_v unto_o we_o 4._o in_o pag._n 232._o it_o be_v say_v they_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o they_o say_v ave_fw-la maria_n and_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o prayer_n as_o for_o the_o five_o and_o nine_o in_o the_o same_o page_n it_o be_v say_v they_o pray_v seven_o time_n a_o day_n a_o elder_a begin_v the_o prayer_n and_o make_v it_o long_o or_o short_a as_o he_o think_v expedient_a and_o the_o rest_n follow_v he_o whence_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o use_v other_o prayer_n or_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o prescribe_v or_o stint_a form_n the_o six_o and_o
eight_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o abovenamed_a article_n of_o aen._n silvius_n and_o naucler_n that_o the_o seven_o be_v a_o calumny_n appear_v by_o that_o they_o do_v condemn_v the_o beg_n of_o friar_n and_o freher_n pag._n 231._o say_v their_o teacher_n be_v weaver_n and_o tailor_n they_o heap_v not_o up_o riches_n but_o be_v content_a with_o necessary_n and_o pag._n 253._o he_o have_v a_o answer_n of_o they_o unto_o augustin_n olomucen_n where_o they_o say_v we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o our_o priest_n for_o that_o they_o purchase_v their_o live_n by_o their_o handy_a work_n because_o so_o the_o doctrine_n and_o apostolical_a example_n teach_v we_o etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o their_o condition_n do_v so_o require_v and_o they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o reproach_n for_o christ_n be_v great_a riches_n than_o the_o treasure_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v object_v also_o that_o peter_n waldo_n be_v a_o layman_n and_o so_o want_v a_o call_n or_o order_n he_o can_v not_o confer_v it_o on_o other_o but_o matth._n parisiensis_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1223._o testify_v that_o many_o bishop_n turn_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v a_o archbishop_n bartholomew_n who_o consecrate_v other_o bishop_n and_o minister_n so_o albeit_o at_o the_o first_o the_o man_n begin_v to_o teach_v his_o own_o family_n only_o yet_o afterward_o their_o number_n increase_v they_o want_v not_o lawful_a teacher_n some_o object_n that_o they_o refuse_v baptism_n unto_o infant_n and_o other_o say_v they_o despise_v the_o old_a testament_n but_o those_o be_v contrary_a unto_o their_o confession_n it_o may_v also_o be_v object_v that_o in_o their_o confession_n they_o acknowledge_v seven_o sacrament_n but_o consider_v the_o description_n and_o use_n of_o those_o which_o they_o call_v sacrament_n and_o the_o difference_n shall_v be_v find_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n all_o those_o thing_n be_v well_o weigh_v we_o need_v not_o doubt_v to_o join_v hand_n with_o the_o waldenses_n as_o with_o our_o elder_a brethren_n nor_o can_v the_o papist_n deny_v that_o our_o church_n be_v old_a than_o luther_n i_o say_v with_o brethren_n not_o as_o father_n because_o their_o doctrine_n and_o we_o be_v not_o original_o from_o they_o but_o from_o christ_n and_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n 19_o it_o remain_v to_o show_v how_o the_o waldenses_n be_v persecute_v in_o the_o waldenses_n the_o persecution_n of_o the_o waldenses_n year_n 1163._o ecbert_n a_o monk_n have_v dispute_v at_o colein_n august_n 2._o with_o arnold_n marsilius_n and_o theodorick_n who_o have_v come_v from_o flanders_n because_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v arnold_n with_o seven_o man_n and_o two_o woman_n be_v burn_v the_o next_o day_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o fire_n arnold_n be_v hear_v to_o say_v unto_o his_o brethren_n be_v constant_a in_o the_o faith_n ex_fw-la caesari_n heisterb_fw-ge lib._n 5._o cap._n 19_o theodorick_n escape_v at_o that_o time_n but_o afterward_o he_o with_o some_o other_o be_v burn_v at_o binna_n the_o same_o year_n pope_n alexander_n iii_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o tower_n accurse_v they_o all_o without_o any_o special_a mention_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o he_o accurse_v all_o that_o buy_v or_o sell_v with_o they_o ann._n 1170._o the_o same_o pope_n send_v a_o cardinal_n unto_o tolouse_n to_o persecute_v they_o there_o at_o that_o time_n two_o leave_v their_o profession_n and_o he_o give_v they_o place_n of_o canon_n hovedan_n annal._n par_fw-fr 2._o testify_v that_o oliverius_n and_o some_o other_o which_o be_v call_v good_a man_n be_v bring_v into_o inquisition_n in_o the_o province_n of_o tolouse_n by_o peter_n archbishop_n of_o narbon_n girald_n albien_fw-fr and_o other_o all_o the_o people_n behold_v the_o spectacle_n their_o preacher_n be_v call_v in_o lombardy_n consolati_fw-la in_o germany_n and_o france_n boni_fw-la homines_fw-la an._n 1178._o peter_n cardinal_n of_o s._n chysogono_n be_v send_v again_o to_o tolouse_n where_o he_o and_o lewes_n king_n of_o france_n and_z henry_n king_n of_o england_n against_o the_o albigenses_n but_o there_o come_v little_a or_o no_o speed_n continuator_fw-la rober._n monten_a and_o from_o thence_o they_o send_v reginald_n bishop_n of_o bathonien_n and_o henry_n abbot_n of_o clareval_n in_o the_o diocy_n of_o albia_n in_o the_o legate_n name_n to_o charge_n roger_n lord_n of_o that_o land_n to_o purge_v his_o territory_n from_o those_o heretic_n because_o he_o will_v not_o give_v obedience_n nor_o his_o presence_n they_o accuse_v he_o rog._n hou._n lo._n cit_fw-la the_o next_o year_n the_o same_o pope_n in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n accurse_v they_o all_o the_o decree_n be_v in_o tom._n 4._o council_n print_a at_o rome_n neither_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o their_o error_n in_o it_o after_o two_o year_n that_o abbot_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o albanen_n and_o a_o cardinal_n be_v send_v into_o gascony_n but_o in_o vain_a say_v altisiod_n cronol_n ad_fw-la an._n 1181._o for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o poor_a man_n have_v liberty_n they_o return_v unto_o their_o profession_n an._n 1183._o in_o the_o village_n bituricen_n 5000._o be_v kill_v in_o one_o day_n who_o they_o call_v catharelli_n or_o more_o contemptuous_o ruptarii_fw-la guil._n armorica_n in_o gestis_fw-la philippi_n frumald_n bishop_n of_o atrebat_fw-la imprison_v adam_n and_o radulph_n with_o other_o two_o because_o he_o be_v sick_a william_n bishop_n of_o rheims_n come_v thither_o with_o the_o same_o philip_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v the_o next_o pope_n lucius_n in_o a_o council_n at_o verona_n where_o the_o emperor_n frederik_n be_v present_a accurse_a all_o the_o waldenses_n so_o do_v urban_n iii_o and_o clemens_n iii_o as_o witness_v andr._n favin_n in_o hist_n navar._n lib._n 5._o and_o we_o will_v hear_v more_o of_o their_o persecution_n hereafter_o ja._n vsser_n in_o eccless_a statu_fw-la cap._n 8_o &_o 10._o 20._o radevic_n a_o canon_n frise_v write_v two_o book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n i._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 10._o he_o speak_v of_o pope_n adrian_n say_v let_v we_o hear_v the_o beast_n that_o have_v a_o face_n like_o a_o lamb_n and_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n 21._o william_n archbishop_n of_o senon_n write_v unto_o pope_n alexander_n iii_o thus_o let_v your_o excellency_n most_o holy_a father_n hear_v patient_o what_o we_o say_v for_o our_o soul_n be_v in_o bitterness_n and_o so_o be_v your_o devote_a son_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n of_o france_n how_o all_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v trouble_v with_o scandal_n flow_v in_o time_n of_o your_o apostleship_n from_o the_o apostolical_a see_v see_v as_o our_o nation_n say_v satan_n be_v let_v loose_a there_o to_o the_o ruin_n of_o all_o the_o church_n there_o christ_n be_v crucify_v again_o and_o manifest_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o murderer_n go_v free_a baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la an._n 1170._o ex_fw-la manuscrip_n vatic_n at_o the_o same_o time_n stephan_n tronac_n in_o epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la joh._n pictavi_n which_o be_v print_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o gerebert_n say_v i_o know_v not_o father_n whether_o the_o 1000_o year_n be_v expire_v when_o satan_n shall_v be_v loose_v but_o we_o see_v his_o servant_n so_o loose_a that_o they_o bind_v god_n servant_n vsser_n lib._n cit_fw-la cap._n 3._o 22._o peter_n a_o parisian_a monk_n be_v of_o great_a age_n die_v ann._n 1167._o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la abbreviat_fw-la he_o commend_v god_n word_n and_o tax_v the_o idleness_n and_o impiety_n of_o priest_n the_o curiosity_n of_o schoolman_n the_o multitude_n and_o abuse_n of_o mass_n the_o multitude_n of_o man_n tradition_n whereby_o the_o precept_n of_o god_n be_v make_v void_a he_o call_v indulgence_n a_o godly_a deceit_n he_o show_v how_o lucas_n a_o bishop_n of_o hungary_n have_v excommunicate_v a_o layman_n for_o a_o crime_n the_o man_n run_v to_o pope_n alexander_n iii_o and_o obtain_v absolution_n for_o money_n but_o the_o bishop_n regard_v not_o the_o pope_n threaten_n but_o do_v excommunicate_v the_o man_n again_o and_o the_o three_o time_n for_o his_o obstinacy_n wherefore_o the_o pope_n do_v excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n but_o lucas_n despise_v his_o curse_n as_o unjust_a and_o never_o seek_v absolution_n nevertheless_o this_o bishop_n be_v high_o account_v after_o his_o death_n and_o be_v call_v st._n lucas_n catal._n test_n ver_fw-la 23._o bernard_n clunicen_n about_o that_o time_n write_v a_o large_a satyr_n not_o spare_v the_o pope_n nor_o cardinal_n of_o which_o be_v here_o some_o passage_n ex_fw-la catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 14._o pontificalia_fw-la corda_fw-la carentia_fw-la cord_n probavit_fw-la pontificalia_fw-la corda_fw-la pecunia_fw-la contenebravit_fw-la pontificum_fw-la status_fw-la antè_fw-la fuit_fw-la ratus_fw-la integer_fw-la antè_fw-la ille_fw-la statum_fw-la dabat_fw-la ordine_fw-la nunc_fw-la labat_fw-la ille_fw-la labante_fw-la qui_fw-la super_fw-la hoc_fw-la mare_fw-la debuerat_fw-la dare_v se_fw-la quasi_fw-la
and_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n but_o let_v he_o teach_v these_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o god_n and_o not_o of_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n but_o what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v dist_n 9_o cap._n 6._o as_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a book_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o hebrew_n book_n so_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o new_a crave_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o greek_a language_n dist_n 99_o cap._n 3._o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n nor_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o way_n but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o see_v but_o let_v not_o even_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v universal_a dist_n 95._o c._n olim_fw-la in_o old_a time_n he_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o be_v a_o presbyter_n and_o ere_o that_o by_o instinct_n of_o the_o devil_n faction_n and_o schism_n be_v in_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v say_v among_o the_o people_n i_o be_o apollo_n and_o i_o be_o cepha_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a counsel_n of_o the_o presbyter_n so_o let_v bishop_n know_v that_o by_o custom_n more_o than_o by_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n dispensation_n they_o be_v great_a than_o the_o presbyter_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a caus_n 1._o qu._n 1._o c._n augustinus_n take_v the_o word_n from_o the_o water_n and_o what_o be_v it_o but_o water_n the_o word_n be_v add_v unto_o the_o element_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n whence_o be_v this_o virtue_n unto_o the_o water_n that_o it_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o wash_v the_o heart_n the_o word_n do_v it_o not_o because_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o because_o it_o be_v believe_v for_o in_o the_o word_n itself_o the_o pass_a sound_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o abide_a virtue_n be_v another_o de_fw-fr consecra_fw-la dist_n 2._o c._n comperimus_fw-la we_o have_v find_v that_o some_o when_o they_o have_v take_v only_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o holy_a body_n do_v abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o holy_a blood_n who_o without_o doubt_n because_o i_o know_v not_o by_o what_o superstition_n they_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v restrain_v shall_v either_o take_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o be_v debar_v from_o all_o because_o the_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n can_v be_v without_o great_a sacrilege_n ca._n prima_fw-la quidem_fw-la till_o this_o world_n be_v finish_v the_o lord_n be_v above_o and_o yet_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v also_o here_o with_o we_o for_o the_o body_n in_o which_o he_o arise_v must_v be_v in_o one_o place_n but_o his_o truth_n be_v diffuse_v every_o where_n c._n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la the_o bread_n be_v after_o a_o manner_n call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o the_o offering_n which_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v christ_n passion_n death_n and_o crucify_a not_o in_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o in_o a_o signify_v mystery_n where_o the_o gloss_n say_v the_o bread_n i._n e._n the_o sacrament_n which_o true_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v his_o body_n but_o improper_o that_o be_v it_o signify_v ca._n in_o christo_n what_o do_v we_o then_o do_v we_o not_o offer_v every_o day_n yea_o but_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n it_o be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n thereof_o what_o be_v do_v ca._n quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la because_o he_o be_v to_o remove_v his_o body_n from_o our_o eye_n and_o carry_v it_o above_o the_o star_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o supper_n he_o shall_v consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o end_n it_o shall_v be_v always_o reverence_v in_o a_o mystery_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v in_o payment_n many_o such_o passage_n be_v in_o these_o decree_n which_o differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o do_v prove_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n now_o be_v not_o such_o as_o it_o be_v then_o pope_n eugenius_n do_v approve_v all_o these_o decree_n and_o ordain_v that_o these_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o school_n and_o university_n instead_o of_o all_o canon_n and_o decree_n that_o so_o he_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o draw_v they_o all_o under_o one_o yoke_n 30._o peter_n lombard_n bishop_n of_o paris_n at_o the_o same_o time_n follow_v the_o footstep_n sentence_n some_o note_n of_o lombard_n sentence_n of_o gratian_n and_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o divinity_n into_o four_o book_n of_o sentence_n out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n but_o as_o i_o say_v of_o gratian'ss_n decree_n with_o add_v mince_a and_o change_v of_o word_n and_o letter_n and_o suitable_o unto_o his_o time_n and_o these_o sentence_n be_v authorise_v as_o the_o text_n in_o all_o school_n to_o the_o end_n none_o from_o thenceforth_o shall_v search_v antiquity_n and_o truth_n any_o more_o from_o father_n or_o counsel_n under_o no_o less_o danger_n than_o guiltiness_n of_o heresy_n hear_v what_o cor._n agrippa_n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a cap._n 97._o say_v of_o this_o scholastic_a theology_n it_o be_v say_v he_o of_o the_o kind_n of_o centaur_n a_o twofold_a discipline_n blow_v up_o by_o the_o sorbon_n of_o paris_n with_o a_o sort_n of_o mixtion_n of_o divine_a oracle_n and_o philosophical_a reason_n write_v after_o a_o new_a form_n and_o far_o different_a from_o the_o ancient_a custom_n by_o question_n and_o sly_a syllogism_n without_o all_o ornament_n of_o language_n but_o otherwise_o full_a of_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n and_o profitable_a to_o convince_v heretic_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faculty_n of_o scholastic_a theology_n be_v not_o free_a from_o error_n and_o wickedness_n these_o curse_a hypocrite_n and_o bold_a sophist_n have_v bring_v in_o so_o many_o heresy_n which_o preach_v christ_n not_o of_o good_a will_n as_o paul_n say_v but_o of_o contention_n so_o that_o there_o be_v more_o agreement_n among_o philosopher_n then_o among_o these_o divine_n who_o have_v extinguish_v ancient_a divinity_n with_o opinion_n of_o man_n and_o new_a error_n etc._n etc._n here_o barth_n gravius_n a_o printer_n at_o lovane_n about_o the_o year_n 1565._o give_v we_o some_o light_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o edition_n of_o these_o sentence_n he_o tell_v that_o he_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o reduce_v all_o the_o testimony_n unto_o the_o first_o fountain_n in_o sincerity_n but_o to_o his_o great_a admiration_n he_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o master_n there_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o because_o albeit_o in_o other_o edition_n innumerable_a place_n be_v correct_v yet_o many_o error_n as_o yet_o be_v remain_v and_o these_o not_o little_a one_o and_o not_o a_o few_o thing_n as_o in_o the_o edition_n at_o paris_n be_v change_v not_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o old_a book_n but_o in_o conjecture_n yea_o and_o the_o old_a word_n be_v corrupt_v oft_o time_n through_o a_o immoderate_a desire_n of_o amend_v and_o in_o not_o a_o few_o place_n the_o worse_a be_v put_v for_o the_o better_a and_o say_v he_o this_o may_v not_o be_v dissemble_v that_o the_o genuine_a read_n of_o the_o master_n in_o quote_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n be_v very_o oft_o change_v into_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o original_n especial_o not_o old_a copy_n witness_v that_o he_o have_v leave_v it_o so_o write_v for_o the_o master_n be_v not_o so_o solicitous_a to_o repeat_v all_o their_o place_n whole_o but_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o propound_v the_o matter_n brief_o and_o leave_v out_o many_o line_n in_o the_o middle_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o his_o mind_n to_o fill_v up_o what_o he_o have_v omit_v yea_o they_o have_v find_v by_o sure_a argument_n that_o he_o have_v transcribe_v many_o thing_n not_o from_o the_o very_a fountain_n but_o from_o hugo_n victorian_n and_o especial_o out_o of_o the_o glossa_fw-la ordinaria_fw-la where_o these_o passage_n be_v not_o find_v in_o a_o continue_v context_n as_o in_o their_o own_o author_n but_o maimedly_n and_o sometime_o but_o in_o break_a piece_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o sundry_a book_n and_o chapter_n and_o mix_v together_o as_o in_o a_o hotchpotch_n and_o so_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v corrupt_a in_o the_o master_n it_o must_v not_o be_v reduce_v unto_o the_o first_o fountain_n but_o rather_o unto_o the_o book_n of_o the_o glossa_fw-la because_o it_o be_v last_o take_v thence_o and_o also_o he_o be_v sometime_o deceive_v in_o read_v it_o wrong_v possible_o and_o lead_v into_o error_n in_o which_o case_n to_o amend_v he_o according_a to_o the_o square_n of_o his_o author_n be_v most_o absurd_a and_o madness_n they_o say_v also_o that_o in_o quote_v the_o author_n he_o
by_o his_o bastard_n son_n manfred_n with_o a_o pillow_n crantz_n in_o saxo._n lib._n 8._o cap_n 18._o the_o writer_n testify_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o excellent_a gift_n albeit_o the_o pope_n pursue_v he_o as_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o they_o say_v when_o they_o consider_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o command_n to_o forgive_v seventy_o time_n in_o a_o day_n with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o emperor_n they_o be_v persuade_v to_o think_v with_o aeneas_n silvius_n that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o great_a calamity_n in_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n these_o many_o year_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v the_o author_n and_o they_o call_v this_o frederick_n another_o charles_n the_o great_a he_o can_v talk_v in_o arabic_a greek_a latin_a french_a and_o dutch_a language_n on_o his_o tomb_n it_o be_v write_v thus_o si_fw-la probitas_fw-la sensus_fw-la virtutes_fw-la gratia_fw-la census_fw-la nobilitas_fw-la orti_fw-la possent_fw-la obsistere_fw-la morti_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la extinctus_fw-la fredericus_fw-la qui_fw-la iaceo_fw-la intus_fw-la jo._n bale_n say_v he_o may_v not_o in_o this_o cause_n believe_v blondus_n platina_n stella_n or_o sabellicus_n for_o they_o report_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v write_v by_o the_o flatterer_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a they_o may_v provoke_v all_o the_o world_n against_o he_o but_o who_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n let_v they_o read_v the_o six_o book_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-fr vineis_fw-la haec_fw-la marius_n say_v he_o 4._o in_o the_o greek_a empire_n be_v a_o great_a alteration_n about_o that_o time_n the_o history_n change_v the_o greek_a empire_n be_v change_v thereof_o i_o will_v set_v down_o together_o for_o the_o more_o clearness_n isaacius_n the_o emperor_n have_v redeem_v his_o brother_n alexius_n from_o the_o scythian_n and_o advance_v he_o to_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o all_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v at_o the_o command_n of_o alexius_n here_o nicetas_n choniat_n in_o annal._n lament_v the_o condition_n of_o that_o people_n say_v truth_n and_o holiness_n have_v fail_v and_o because_o of_o manifold_a iniquity_n love_n be_v become_v cold_a so_o that_o the_o people_n leave_v whole_a city_n and_o go_v in_o colony_n into_o the_o land_n of_o the_o babarian_o where_o they_o may_v live_v more_o secure_o for_o a_o sober_a kind_n of_o life_n be_v banish_v by_o frequent_a tyranny_n and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v robber_n neither_o think_v nor_o do_v any_o thing_n moderate_o o_o glorious_a empire_n of_o the_o roman_n say_v he_o and_o majesty_n which_o all_o nation_n do_v admire_v and_o adore_v what_o tyrant_n have_v thou_o endure_v with_o what_o injury_n have_v thou_o be_v afflict_v how_o many_o have_v burn_v in_o love_n of_o thou_o what_o man_n have_v thou_o embrace_v and_o prostitute_a thyself_o unto_o what_o sort_n of_o man_n have_v thou_o honour_v with_o a_o diadem_n and_o purple_a shoe_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o way_n observe_v here_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v always_o call_v themselves_o roman_n and_o they_o call_v all_o the_o western_a people_n latin_n when_o the_o empire_n be_v in_o this_o condition_n alexius_n usurp_v the_o crown_n he_o pull_v out_o his_o brother_n eye_n and_o shut_v he_o in_o prison_n an._n 1190._o alexius_n son_n of_o isaacius_n flee_v unto_o philip_n duke_n of_o suevia_n afterwad_v emperor_n who_o have_v marry_v his_o sister_n irene_n and_o he_o send_v he_o at_o last_o unto_o the_o pope_n for_o help_v to_o be_v restore_v there_o this_o alexius_n conform_v himself_o unto_o rome_n and_o he_o promise_v say_v nicetas_n to_o change_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n into_o the_o corrupt_a religion_n of_o the_o latin_n the_o pope_n recommend_v he_o unto_o certain_a prince_n which_o then_o be_v assemble_v at_o venice_n to_o go_v into_o syria_n to_o wit_n baldwin_n earl_n of_o flanders_n and_o his_o brother_n henry_n boniface_n marquis_n of_o monferrate_n lewes_n prince_n of_o savoy_n and_o other_o more_o the_o venetian_n also_o have_v a_o old_a quarrel_n against_o the_o greek_n and_o be_v glad_a of_o this_o occasion_n likewise_o the_o young_a man_n do_v swear_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o what_o they_o do_v demand_v even_o which_o be_v impossible_a ocean_n of_o money_n say_v nicetas_n though_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n understand_v of_o this_o preparation_n he_o make_v nothing_o for_o resistance_n so_o the_o latin_n arrive_v at_o jadara_n and_o then_o come_v to_o epidamnum_n and_o they_o call_v young_a alexius_n emperor_n to_o the_o end_n the_o people_n may_v the_o more_o willing_o accept_v they_o then_o they_o come_v to_o constantinople_n theodorus_n lascaris_n son_n in_o law_n of_o alexius_n make_v some_o resistance_n but_o alexius_n flee_v and_o the_o italian_n enter_v the_o town_n and_o after_o nine_o year_n imprisonment_n isaacius_n be_v set_v upon_o his_o throne_n and_o his_o son_n alexius_n with_o he_o within_o few_o day_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o italian_n sit_v with_o they_o as_o be_v savior_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n then_o the_o soldier_n plunder_v the_o town_n spare_v neither_o private_a house_n nor_o church_n nor_o the_o flemin_n nor_o the_o pisanes_n nor_o the_o venetian_n dwell_v there_o the_o old_a alexius_n have_v be_v deceive_v by_o a_o false_a response_n that_o the_o east_n and_o west_n shall_v be_v conjoin_v in_o his_o time_n and_o now_o the_o monk_n execrable_a man_n and_o hate_v of_o god_n say_v nicet_fw-la make_v he_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v restore_v he_o sight_n and_o give_v he_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o he_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n but_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o these_o monk_n and_o the_o young_a man_n keep_v company_n with_o the_o latin_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o their_o ship_n play_v at_o dice_n carouse_v etc._n etc._n from_o july_n 18._o till_o january_n 25._o the_o people_n be_v so_o grievous_o oppress_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o choose_v another_o emperor_n the_o wise_a sort_n say_v it_o be_v not_o time_n to_o attempt_v the_o like_a but_o the_o people_n be_v so_o impatient_a of_o their_o oppression_n that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v another_o emperor_n and_o they_o name_n nicolaus_n canabus_n who_o be_v very_o unwilling_a but_o ducas_n alexius_n call_v the_o proud_a take_v he_o prisoner_n kill_v young_a alexius_n imprison_v the_o old_a man_n and_o take_v the_o sceptre_n the_o people_n be_v content_v he_o begin_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o venetian_n and_o other_o latin_n their_o demand_n be_v so_o high_a that_o the_o greek_n can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o assent_v wherefore_o they_o possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o town_n put_v ducas_n to_o flight_n and_o do_v more_o harm_n than_o the_o saracen_n do_v at_o their_o enter_v into_o jerusalem_n say_v nicet_fw-la then_o they_o make_v fifteen_o elector_n and_o choose_v baldwin_n emperor_n and_o thomas_n a_o venetian_a to_o be_v patriarch_n who_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o get_v all_o these_o thing_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o report_v imperial_a badge_n to_o baldwin_n in_o who_o successor_n that_o empire_n continue_v sixty_o year_n at_o that_o time_n creta_n and_o euboea_n or_o nigrepont_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o venetian_n boniface_n be_v make_v king_n of_o macedonia_n and_o other_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o other_o all_o the_o greek_a empire_n be_v subject_a unto_o baldwin_n except_o bythinia_n cappadocia_n and_o hadrianople_n and_o in_o they_o several_a greek_n have_v the_o dominion_n especial_o lascaris_n about_o hadrianople_n and_o keep_v the_o title_n of_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n the_o bulgarian_n invade_v thracia_n and_o take_v baldwin_n captive_a and_o send_v he_o in_o fetter_n into_o mysia_n his_o brother_n henry_n succee_v and_o give_v his_o only_a daughter_n unto_o peter_n earl_n of_o altisiodore_n which_o succeed_v in_o the_o empire_n at_o that_o time_n when_o otho_n the_o v._o be_v depose_v he_o be_v confirm_v by_o pope_n honorius_n short_o after_o his_o election_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o return_v from_o rome_n he_o enter_v in_o war_n with_o lascaris_n and_o they_o conclude_v a_o peace_n then_o he_o be_v entrap_v in_o constantinople_n and_o die_v in_o prison_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n his_o wife_n jowl_n cause_v his_o son_n robert_n to_o be_v receive_v emperor_n he_o fall_v in_o love_n with_o a_o young_a damsel_n betroth_v unto_o a_o burgonian_a knight_n who_o have_v do_v good_a service_n in_o that_o empire_n and_o by_o consent_n of_o her_o mother_n bring_v she_o to_o his_o palace_n the_o knight_n dissemble_v for_o a_o time_n and_o then_o make_v a_o horrible_a revenge_n to_o wit_n he_o gather_v his_o friend_n and_o a_o number_n of_o greek_n hater_n of_o robert_n and_o come_v by_o night_n into_o the_o palace_n he_o
and_o confine_v country_n and_o that_o one_o of_o their_o preacher_n who_o be_v burn_v at_o vienna_n have_v affirm_v that_o above_o 80000._o embrace_v the_o same_o doctrine_n within_o those_o province_n and_o another_o name_v lombard_n who_o be_v take_v and_o burn_v at_o colein_n avow_a that_o there_o be_v many_o of_o his_o religion_n within_o and_o about_o that_o city_n and_o from_o those_o dregs_o say_v he_o bohemia_n be_v infect_v with_o these_o error_n until_o this_o day_n but_o it_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bohemian_o at_o constance_n and_o basil_n antonin_n par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 21._o cap._n 5._o say_v many_o of_o they_o be_v burn_v in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n especial_o picenum_n or_o marca_n anconitana_n be_v full_a of_o they_o and_o also_o florence_n whence_o many_o be_v exile_v and_o spread_v themselves_o even_o unto_o greece_n he_o call_v the_o emperor_n lewis_n a_o follower_n of_o they_o he_o say_v jo._n castillioneus_n and_o francis_n hacutara_n two_o franciscan_n be_v burn_v for_o the_o same_o doctrine_n pa._n aemilius_n say_v under_o charles_n the_o fair_a king_n of_o france_n be_v sublime_a engine_n and_o most_o learned_a man_n among_o they_o be_v some_o true_o holy_a and_o other_o strive_v foolish_o to_o exceed_v other_o keep_v no_o measure_n and_o become_v wicked_a and_o it_o be_v uncertain_a to_o guess_v of_o the_o judgement_n and_o manner_n of_o some_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o time_n be_v grievous_a to_o good_a man_n who_o mourn_v secret_o p._n mornay_n in_o myster_n pag._n 440_o &_o 454._o about_o the_o year_n 1340._o conrade_z hager_n who_o be_v a_o preacher_n at_o wortzburgh_n the_o space_n of_o twenty_o four_o year_n teach_v the_o mass_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n nor_o available_a to_o quick_a nor_o dead_a and_o money_n give_v for_o mass_n be_v very_a robbery_n and_o sacrilege_n of_o priest_n and_o certain_o as_o he_o condemn_v the_o false_a sacrifice_n he_o declare_v the_o true_a for_o such_o doctrine_n he_o be_v imprison_v fox_n in_o act._n out_o of_o the_o register_n of_o otho_n the_o vi_o of_o herbi_n an._n 1390._o twenty_o four_o citizen_n of_o mentz_n be_v burn_v at_o binga_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o valdenses_n masseus_n speak_v of_o more_o than_o twenty_o who_o be_v burn_v in_o province_n at_o narbon_n because_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a decretal_n and_o call_v they_o contrary_a unto_o scripture_n 8._o there_o be_v a_o ancient_a record_n poetical_o compile_v of_o the_o date_n or_o year_n ass_n a_o apology_n of_o a_o wolf_n fox_n and_o ass_n 1343._o under_o the_o name_n poenitentiari_n asini_fw-la there_o a_o fox_n a_o wolf_n and_o a_o ass_n be_v say_v to_o shrieve_v one_o another_o first_o the_o wolf_n confess_v unto_o the_o fox_n and_o be_v absolve_v easy_o then_o the_o wolf_n hear_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o fox_n and_o show_v he_o the_o like_a favour_n and_o last_o the_o ass_n confess_v that_o be_v hungry_a he_o take_v a_o straw_n out_o of_o a_o sheave_v of_o corn_n that_o be_v upon_o a_o horse_n back_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n unto_o rome_n he_o profess_v repentance_n for_o the_o fault_n yet_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o heinous_a as_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o other_o two_o he_o be_v confident_a of_o remission_n but_o discipline_n be_v sharp_o execute_v upon_o he_o he_o be_v condemn_v and_o slay_v by_o the_o wolf_n be_v mean_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o fox_n resemble_v the_o priest_n these_o do_v easy_o absolve_v one_o another_o but_o the_o laic_n who_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o ass_n must_v suffer_v sharp_a censure_n namely_o if_o the_o german_a emperor_n come_v under_o inquisition_n he_o must_v be_v deprive_v though_o the_o cause_n be_v but_o like_o a_o straw_n yet_o the_o wolf_n say_v it_o be_v a_o great_a crime_n so_o they_o exaugurate_v the_o escape_n of_o the_o laic_n they_o fly_v upon_o they_o and_o devour_v they_o fox_n in_o act._n 9_o francis_n petrarcha_n a_o florentine_a be_v archdeacon_n of_o parma_n about_o church_n a_o description_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o year_n 1350._o a_o noble_a poet_n and_o honour_v with_o a_o poetical_a crown_n in_o the_o capitole_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o nobility_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n platin._n in_o his_o latin_a epistle_n which_o be_v full_a of_o gravity_n and_o zeal_n he_o declare_v his_o mind_n concern_v the_o present_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o in_o those_o that_o have_v no_o title_n in_o epist_n 8._o he_o say_v whatsoever_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o assyrian_a or_o egyptian_a babylon_n whatsoever_o be_v write_v of_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o avernus_n of_o tartarus_n and_o the_o sulphurous_a lake_n be_v but_o trifle_n in_o comparison_n of_o what_o we_o see_v now_o here_o be_v terrible_a nimrod_n and_o semiramis_n here_o be_v fearful_a rhadamantus_n and_o greedy_a cerberus_n here_o be_v pasiphae_n lie_v under_o taurus_n and_o that_o two_o nature_a minotaur_n brief_o you_o may_v see_v whatsoever_o confuse_a thing_n and_o in_o epist_n 9_o he_o call_v himself_o a_o pilgrim_n of_o jerusalem_n about_o the_o river_n of_o babylon_n in_o epist_n 10._o you_o do_v marvel_n at_o the_o superscription_n of_o my_o epistle_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n see_v thou_o have_v read_v of_o two_o babylon_n only_o ......_o but_o marvel_v not_o there_o be_v a_o three_o babylon_n in_o our_o quarter_n where_o can_v a_o city_n of_o confusion_n be_v say_v to_o be_v more_o just_o then_o in_o the_o west_n who_o build_v it_o i_o know_v not_o but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v who_o dwell_v in_o she_o sure_o they_o from_o who_o she_o have_v her_o name_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v believe_v here_o be_v nimrod_n potent_a in_o the_o earth_n climb_v into_o the_o heaven_n against_o the_o lord_n ......_o here_o be_v cambyses_n more_o furious_a than_o he_o in_o the_o east_n or_o then_o the_o turk_n in_o epist_n 16._o he_o show_v the_o danger_n of_o good_a man_n and_o lover_n of_o truth_n and_o then_o say_v see_v without_o the_o kingdom_n of_o virtue_n silly_a and_o naked_a truth_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o aid_n what_o think_v thou_o will_v be_v where_o all_o virtue_n be_v dead_a and_o bury_v sure_o there_o truth_n be_v the_o great_a crime_n and_o fall_v under_o the_o hatred_n of_o many_o because_o all_o must_v hunt_v after_o the_o love_n of_o one_o man_n ...._o where_o be_v no_o piety_n no_o charity_n nor_o faith_n where_o pride_n envy_n avarice_n and_o luxury_n do_v reign_v where_o the_o worst_a be_v promote_v and_o the_o bribe_a villain_n be_v exalt_v to_o heaven_n but_o the_o just_a and_o poor_a be_v oppress_v where_o simplicity_n be_v term_v foolishness_n and_o malice_n be_v wisdom_n where_o god_n be_v contemn_v money_n be_v worship_v law_n be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o good_a man_n have_v be_v so_o abuse_v that_o now_o not_o a_o good_a man_n can_v be_v see_v i_o will_v glad_o exempt_v one_o from_o this_o deluge_n of_o sin_n and_o i_o confess_v he_o may_v deserve_v it_o but_o it_o be_v a_o scorn_n to_o except_v one_o therefore_o no_o noah_n no_o deucaleon_n shall_v escape_v and_o lest_o the_o woman_n be_v think_v more_o happy_a no_o parrha_n shall_v swim_v forth_o this_o city_n be_v drown_v with_o a_o deluge_n of_o filthy_a lust_n and_o with_o a_o uncredible_a torrent_n of_o wickedness_n ......_o unto_o this_o epistle_n i_o have_v affix_v neither_o my_o hand_n nor_o ring_n nor_o time_n thou_o know_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o speaker_n and_o where_o i_o be_o in_o epist_n 16._o he_o congratulate_v a_o friend_n for_o leave_v the_o pope_n court_n then_o he_o say_v if_o there_o may_v be_v any_o true_a presage_n the_o god_n of_o vengeance_n be_v at_o hand_n the_o lord_n will_v free_o deal_v his_o just_a reward_n unto_o the_o insolent_o proud_a be_v their_o own_o vengeance_n ..._o i_o remember_v what_o long_o since_o i_o say_v unto_o one_o who_o among_o very_o evil_a man_n be_v the_o best_a of_o our_o number_n and_o to_o who_o thou_o be_v join_v in_o blood_n and_o i_o by_o acquaintance_n that_o a_o last_o day_n be_v approach_v unto_o that_o order_n when_o their_o pride_n shall_v fall_v the_o patience_n of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v weary_v out_o and_o when_o he_o between_o stubbornness_n and_o derision_n do_v wish_v unto_o i_o the_o blindeness_n of_o tiresias_n and_o object_v the_o word_n simon_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o ......_o and_o i_o reply_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o defection_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o they_o who_o destroy_v the_o faith_n ......._o then_o he_o say_v in_o earnest_n hold_v thy_o peace_n although_o it_o be_v true_a yet_o let_v not_o we_o be_v the_o author_n ......_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o all_o thing_n have_v their_o own_o time_n and_o the_o end_n of_o
schismatical_a side_n this_o cardinal_n cusan_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr concordantia_fw-la catholica_fw-la which_o he_o direct_v unto_o the_o council_n at_o basil_n maintain_v these_o position_n all_o the_o promise_n which_o christ_n speak_v unto_o peter_n as_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o and_o such_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n universal_o and_o not_o particular_o of_o peter_n or_o his_o successor_n especial_o since_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n every_o prelate_n have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o seat_n and_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v attain_v such_o precedency_n in_o the_o church_n as_o rome_n have_v ancient_o among_o the_o nation_n or_o if_o they_o have_v place_n according_a to_o the_o holiness_n of_o he_o which_o first_o sit_v there_o certain_o jerusalem_n shall_v have_v the_o primacy_n where_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n do_v wash_v his_o church_n with_o his_o blood_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o ephesus_n the_o seat_n of_o st._n john_n be_v prefer_v to_o alexandria_n the_o seat_n of_o mark_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n the_o council_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o head_n thereof_o but_o upon_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o assessor_n although_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v present_a there_o he_o have_v not_o more_o power_n there_o then_o a_o metropolitan_a in_o his_o provincial_a synod_n without_o all_o controversy_n a_o universal_a council_n be_v above_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o power_n be_v sometime_o say_v to_o have_v be_v from_o christ_n yet_o in_o more_o place_n we_o find_v that_o his_o primacy_n be_v from_o man_n and_o depend_v on_o the_o canon_n wherefore_o as_o he_o may_v be_v judge_v and_o depose_v by_o a_o council_n so_o he_o can_v abrogate_v nor_o change_v nor_o destroy_v the_o canon_n of_o counsel_n in_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o &_o ss_z by_o many_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n he_o prove_v it_o false_a that_o constantine_n give_v or_o can_v give_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n unto_o the_o pope_n these_o testimony_n be_v exstract_v and_o subjoin_v to_o the_o declamation_n of_o laur._n valla_n in_o fascic_n rer_n expetend_v there_o also_o cusanus_fw-la say_v neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o pope_n give_v it_o unto_o charles_n or_o transfer_v it_o from_o the_o greek_n unto_o the_o german_n and_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o the_o prince_n elector_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o they_o discharge_v the_o office_n of_o election_n in_o his_o name_n in_o the_o contrary_a the_o emperor_n depend_v on_o god_n alone_o and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n nor_o may_v the_o pope_n depose_v he_o the_o emperor_n in_o old_a time_n call_v the_o general_a counsel_n as_o other_o prince_n have_v take_v care_n of_o provincial_a synod_n when_o he_o be_v legate_n in_o germany_n he_o hinder_v and_o discharge_v the_o carry_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o their_o procession_n crantz_n in_o metrop_n he_o add_v because_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v for_o use_v and_o not_o for_o ostentation_n 23._o in_o the_o year_n 1442._o the_o emperor_n frederick_n have_v a_o diet_n at_o mentz_n where_o they_o speak_v of_o cast_v off_o the_o pope_n yoke_n in_o time_n of_o the_o schism_n but_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n nicolaus_n this_o neutrality_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o aen._n silvius_n and_o therefore_o he_o get_v a_o red_a hat_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o condition_n that_o he_o have_v make_v in_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o fulfil_v the_o german_n assemble_v again_o and_o by_o advice_n of_o diether_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n they_o will_v provide_v for_o themselves_o according_a to_o the_o pragmatica_fw-la sanctio_n against_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o agree_v upon_o decree_n concern_v the_o election_n of_o prelate_n the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n the_o plead_n of_o cause_n the_o grant_n of_o pardon_n the_o exaction_n of_o ten_o etc._n etc._n and_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v discern_v against_o they_o they_o resolve_v to_o provide_v for_o themselves_o by_o a_o appellation_n 24._o martin_n meyer_n chancellor_n unto_o this_o diether_o write_v a_o epistle_n unto_o cardinal_n aen._n silvius_n and_o complain_v in_o his_o master_n name_n that_o the_o canon_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n be_v not_o observe_v that_o calixtus_n as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o covenant_n of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v oppress_v germany_n he_o contemn_v the_o election_n of_o their_o prelate_n and_o reserve_v their_o benefice_n of_o all_o sort_n unto_o his_o cardinal_n and_o secretary_n expectative_a grace_n be_v give_v without_o number_n annates_fw-la or_o mid-fruit_n be_v exact_v rigorous_o yea_o more_o be_v extort_a than_o be_v owe_v the_o government_n of_o church_n be_v not_o give_v unto_o they_o which_o deserve_v best_a but_o who_o pay_v most_o new_a indulgence_n be_v send_v daily_o for_o squeeze_v money_n ....._o a_o thousand_o mean_n be_v devise_v whereby_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n draw_v gold_n from_o we_o as_o if_o we_o be_v witless_a barbarian_n ...._o our_o prince_n be_v awaken_v have_v resolve_v and_o decree_v to_o cast_v off_o this_o bondage_n and_o to_o defend_v their_o former_a liberty_n in_o the_o end_n he_o congratulate_v his_o late_a advancement_n and_o lament_v that_o so_o many_o evil_n happen_v in_o his_o time_n but_o say_v he_o god_n will_v have_v it_o otherwise_o and_o his_o decree_n must_v have_v place_n by_o these_o word_n meyer_n give_v to_o understand_v more_o than_o he_o speak_v this_o epistle_n be_v print_v with_o silvius_n his_o description_n of_o germany_n 25._o the_o greek_n write_v unto_o the_o bohemian_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o holy_a bohemian_o a_o letter_n from_o greece_n unto_o the_o bohemian_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o orthodox_n believer_n unto_o all_o the_o master_n and_o each_o of_o the_o famous_a brethren_n and_o son_n belove_v in_o jesus_n christ_n in_o bohemia_n salvation_n by_o the_o son_n of_o the_o glorious_a virgin_n and_o a_o hundred-fold_n increase_v of_o spiritual_a fruit_n the_o holy_a church_n of_o the_o heavenly_a bridegroom_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v not_o great_a pleasure_n then_o that_o she_o hear_v that_o her_o son_n walk_v in_o the_o truth_n therefore_o when_o not_o without_o most_o great_a pleasure_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o pledge_n of_o common_a fruit_n the_o fertility_n and_o growth_n of_o they_o who_o courageous_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o true_a faith_n come_v unto_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o same_o godly_a and_o bountiful_a mother_n especial_o by_o a_o brother_n and_o son_n constantinus_n anglicus_n the_o bearer_n of_o these_o present_n and_o a_o reverend_a priest_n we_o be_v more_o plain_o advertise_v that_o you_o harken_v not_o unto_o the_o novelty_n that_o be_v bring_v by_o some_o into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o you_o be_v constant_a in_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o disciple_n the_o holy_a church_n have_v incontinent_o write_v unto_o you_o and_o intend_v to_o exhort_v you_o into_o concord_n with_o she_o and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o forge_a union_n of_o florence_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a council_n which_o union_n shall_v rather_o be_v call_v a_o diremption_n from_o the_o truth_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o receive_v not_o that_o union_n but_o altogether_o refuse_v it_o and_o according_a to_o the_o immovable_a decree_n of_o truth_n wherein_o only_o we_o can_v be_v true_o and_o safe_o unite_v for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n doubt_v not_o of_o these_o thing_n which_o she_o hear_v report_v of_o you_o as_o be_v say_v see_v therefore_o you_o have_v judge_v it_o expedient_a to_o contraveen_v the_o perilous_a novation_n of_o rome_n you_o shall_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n with_o this_o church_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o true_a judge_n for_o although_o no_o good_a report_n of_o you_o come_v unto_o we_o before_o that_o you_o do_v not_o resist_v the_o roman_a novelty_n but_o rather_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o christian_a church_n yet_o now_o we_o be_v inform_v more_o sure_o that_o you_o be_v revive_v and_o return_v unto_o the_o common_a religion_n of_o christian_n and_o unto_o true_a godliness_n and_o that_o you_o leave_v not_o your_o mother_n but_o be_v zealous_a with_o true_a love_n of_o your_o true_a mother_n have_v a_o singular_a desire_n to_o promove_v and_o enlarge_v she_o which_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o come_n of_o this_o devout_a priest_n as_o we_o have_v say_v who_o have_v declare_v unto_o we_o particular_o the_o estate_n
article_n but_o such_o as_o may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v venomous_a accusation_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o enemy_n be_v ever_o to_o make_v truth_n odious_a or_o utter_v obscure_o or_o of_o not_o so_o great_a importance_n the_o bishop_n say_v to_o adam_n reed_n reed_n believe_v thou_o that_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n adam_n answer_v not_o as_o i_o do_v the_o sacrament_n seven_o the_o bishop_n say_v unto_o the_o king_n sir_n io_n he_o deni_v that_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n the_o king_n say_v adam_z what_o say_v thou_o he_o answer_v if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n hear_v the_o end_n between_o the_o churl_n and_o i_o then_o turn_v to_o the_o bishop_n he_o say_v i_o neither_o think_v nor_o believe_v as_o thou_o think_v but_o i_o be_o most_o assure_v that_o god_n be_v not_o only_o in_o heaven_n but_o also_o on_o earth_n but_o thou_o and_o thy_o faction_n declare_v by_o your_o work_n that_o either_o god_n be_v not_o at_o all_o or_o that_o he_o be_v so_o set_v up_o in_o heaven_n that_o he_o regard_v not_o what_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o earth_n for_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v firm_o that_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n thou_o will_v not_o make_v thyself_o checkmate_v to_o the_o king_n and_o altogether_o forget_v the_o charge_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o not_o to_o play_v the_o proud_a prelate_n as_o all_o the_o rabble_n of_o you_o do_v now_o and_o then_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o king_n sir_n judge_v now_o whether_o the_o bishop_n or_o i_o do_v believe_v best_a that_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n the_o bishop_n can_v not_o revenge_v himself_o as_o he_o will_v and_o other_o taunt_n be_v give_v he_o but_o the_o king_n willing_a to_o put_v a_o end_n say_v unto_o adam_n will_v thou_o burn_v thy_o bill_n he_o answer_v sir_n the_o bishop_n if_o you_o will_n with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a scoff_v the_o bishop_n and_o his_o party_n be_v so_o dash_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o accusation_n be_v turn_v into_o laughter_n and_o the_o king_n will_v not_o condemn_v they_o after_o that_o time_n none_o be_v accuse_v for_o religion_n in_o the_o space_n of_o 30._o year_n chap._n v._o of_o counsel_n 1._o i_o resume_v the_o narration_n of_o counsel_n not_o for_o any_o profitable_a information_n that_o may_v be_v reap_v from_o their_o decree_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o pope_n may_v appear_v the_o more_o clear_o partly_o as_o it_o be_v condemn_v by_o these_o counsel_n in_o former_a time_n and_o partly_o as_o it_o do_v over-rule_v and_o abuse_v some_o of_o they_o by_o crafty_a policy_n 2._o the_o cardinal_n of_o both_o the_o pope_n gregory_n and_o benedict_n leave_v they_o and_o pisa_n a_o council_n at_o pisa_n assemble_v a_o council_n at_o pisa_n an._n 1409._o the_o bishop_n tarracon_n have_v a_o sermon_n on_o the_o text_n purge_v out_o the_o leaven_n etc._n etc._n he_o say_v these_o two_o be_v no_o more_o pope_n than_o his_o shoe_n be_v pope_n they_o be_v worse_o than_o anna_n and_o caiaphas_n and_o be_v like_a to_o devil_n the_o definitive_a sentence_n be_v pronounce_v that_o both_o benedict_n and_o gregory_n be_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o worthy_a to_o be_v depose_v for_o their_o horrible_a sin_n the_o act_n of_o they_o both_o in_o the_o precede_a year_n be_v annul_v alexander_n the_o v._o be_v choose_v pope_n and_o a_o epistle_n be_v write_v in_o his_o name_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n where_o the_o other_o two_o pope_n be_v call_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n and_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o they_o be_v depose_v for_o their_o notorious_a crime_n ph._n mornae_n in_o myster_n ex_fw-la monstrelet_n vol._n 1._o cap._n 52._o 53._o &_o 57_o this_o council_n say_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr council_n be_v a_o general_n council_n but_o it_o seem_v neither_o to_o be_v approve_v nor_o reject_v since_o antoninus_n affirm_v par_fw-fr 3._o tit_n 22._o cap._n 5._o that_o it_o be_v a_o unlawful_a and_o not_o a_o true_a council_n and_o the_o event_n prove_v the_o same_o because_o it_o take_v not_o away_o but_o augment_v the_o schism_n and_o yet_o say_v bellarm._n if_o it_o have_v be_v condemn_v without_o all_o doubt_n pope_n alexander_n the_o vi_o have_v not_o call_v himself_o the_o six_o but_o the_o five_o mark_v this_o reason_n yea_o it_o be_v almost_o the_o common_a opinion_n that_o alexander_n and_o his_o successor_n john_n be_v true_a pope_n as_o indeed_o of_o those_o three_o they_o be_v most_o reverence_v so_o he_o 3._o in_o the_o year_n 1410._o pope_n john_n assemble_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n a_o mass_n rome_n a_o council_n at_o rome_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v say_v after_o the_o custom_n the_o pope_n sit_v in_o his_o chair_n behold_v a_o ugly_a and_o dreadful_a owl_n come_v from_o behind_o he_o fly_v too_o and_o fro_o with_o a_o ill-favoured_a shout_n and_o stand_v sometime_o upon_o a_o middle_a beam_n of_o the_o church_n look_v with_o stare_a eye_n upon_o the_o pope_n all_o the_o people_n marvel_v that_o such_o a_o night_n fowl_n come_v in_o the_o day_n among_o such_o a_o multitude_n judge_v it_o a_o ominous_a token_n for_o behold_v say_v they_o how_o the_o spirit_n appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o owl_n as_o they_o behold_v one_o another_o scarce_o can_v they_o keep_v their_o countenance_n from_o laughter_n pope_n john_n begin_v to_o sweat_v and_o to_o fret_v within_o and_o not_o find_v by_o what_o mean_v he_o can_v salve_v the_o matter_n he_o arise_v and_o go_v away_o in_o another_o session_n the_o owl_n appear_v again_o and_o ever_o look_v towards_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v ashamed_a and_o command_v to_o drive_v she_o away_o but_o she_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o their_o cry_n nor_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v throw_v at_o she_o and_o never_o remove_v until_o they_o kill_v she_o they_o who_o be_v present_a do_v scoff_n at_o the_o council_n and_o go_v away_o and_o nothing_o be_v act_v nic._n clemangis_n in_o fascic_fw-la rer_n expetend_v 4._o by_o much_o travel_n of_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n be_v assemble_v an._n 1414._o at_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d at_o 〈◊〉_d constance_n a_o council_n of_o 309._o bishop_n 600._o other_o father_n 24._o duke_n 140._o count_v many_o delegate_n from_o city_n and_o incorporation_n and_o from_o university_n and_o many_o learned_a lawyer_n with_o consent_n of_o pope_n john_n all_o particular_n be_v decide_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o four_o nation_n to_o wit_n german_n italian_a french_a and_o english_a every_o nation_n have_v their_o several_a place_n and_o precedent_n who_o continue_v not_o constant_o but_o be_v often_o change_v here_o be_v 45._o session_n and_o many_o thing_n conclude_v the_o principal_n be_v these_o in_o sess_n 1._o nou._n 16._o it_o be_v determine_v with_o consent_n of_o p._n john_n sit_v as_o precedent_n that_o the_o council_n be_v lawful_o call_v and_o the_o minister_n and_o official_o of_o the_o council_n be_v name_v in_o sess_n 2._o mar._n 2._o an._n 1215._o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a the_o pope_n give_v his_o renunciation_n in_o this_o manner_n i_o john_n pope_n xxiv_o for_o the_o quiet_v of_o all_o christian_a people_n do_v promise_n swear_v and_o vow_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o church_n and_o this_o sacred_a council_n that_o i_o shall_v willing_o and_o free_o give_v peace_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o way_n of_o simple_a renunciation_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o to_o do_v and_o fulfil_v it_o effectual_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o present_a council_n if_o and_o when_o peter_n de_fw-fr luna_n benedict_n the_o xiii_o and_o angelus_n de_fw-fr corario_n greg._n the_o xii_o so_o call_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o obedience_n shall_v by_o themselves_o or_o by_o their_o lawful_a proctor_n forsake_v simple_o the_o title_n which_o they_o pretend_v etc._n etc._n instrument_n be_v take_v thereupon_o in_o sess_n 3._o mar._n 25._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o depart_n of_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v no_o hindrance_n but_o the_o council_n may_v proceed_v item_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v not_o be_v dissolve_v until_o the_o schism_n be_v remove_v and_o the_o church_n be_v reform_v in_o head_n and_o member_n in_o sess_n 4._o march_n 30._o this_o synod_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o represent_v the_o catholic_n church_n militant_a have_v immediate_a power_n from_o christ_n unto_o which_o every_o man_n shall_v be_v obedient_a in_o thing_n concern_v faith_n extirpation_n of_o schism_n and_o general_a reformation_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o head_n and_o member_n item_n pope_n john_n shall_v not_o withdraw_v any_o official_a of_o the_o council_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v attempt_v to_o do_v so_o or_o have_v atempt_v it_o by_o censure_n and_o excommunication_n none_o of_o those_o thing_n shall_v
patavium_n etc._n etc._n and_o unto_o the_o pope_n arimino_n faventia_n cervia_n ravenna_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o reserve_v unto_o himself_o their_o part_n of_o lombardy_n so_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o venetian_n be_v sore_o weaken_v and_o never_o of_o such_o power_n again_o howbeit_o by_o their_o power_n they_o have_v recover_v what_o be_v give_v unto_o maximilian_n pope_n julius_n be_v the_o first_o who_o forsake_v the_o league_n when_o he_o have_v such_o town_n he_o fear_v that_o if_o the_o venetian_n be_v bring_v to_o ruin_v his_o own_o estate_n may_v be_v in_o danger_n for_o the_o college_n have_v special_a care_n that_o none_o be_v of_o great_a power_n than_o the_o pope_n wherefore_o julius_n make_v peace_n with_o venice_n as_o be_v hint_v before_o because_o john_n king_n of_o navarre_n do_v aid_v king_n lewes_n the_o pope_n know_v that_o navarre_n at_o that_o time_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n dis-peopled_n give_v it_o unto_o ferdinand_n who_o do_v invade_v it_o albeit_o he_o have_v marry_v his_o brother_n daughter_n he_o take_v pompejopolis_n and_o the_o spanish_a keep_v a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o kingdom_n until_o this_o time_n about_o the_o year_n 1512._o maximilian_n make_v league_n with_o henry_n viii_o king_n of_o england_n and_o they_o both_o invade_v france_n and_o in_o several_a part_n prevail_v the_o emperor_n be_v draw_v back_o to_o appease_v a_o debate_n betwixt_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o seculare_fw-la estate_n he_o be_v advise_v to_o restrain_v the_o avarice_n of_o churchman_n and_o in_o the_o diaet_fw-la at_o trever_n they_o consult_v how_o seam_n pluraelity_n of_o benefice_n discharge_v by_o the_o emp._n a_o coat_n without_o a_o seam_n drunkenness_n and_o common_a swear_n shall_v be_v punish_v but_o these_o two_o grievous_a sin_n can_v not_o be_v root_v up_o say_v osiander_n in_o epit._n hist._n cent._n 16._o libr._n 1._o cap._n 16._o nevertheless_o by_o imperial_a authority_n the_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n be_v for_o bid_v fasci_n rer_n expetend_v pag._n 170._o in_o time_n of_o that_o diaet_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o prince_n be_v open_v the_o altar_n of_o the_o great_a church_n of_o s._n peter_n there_o in_o be_v find_v a_o coat_n without_o a_o seam_n and_o that_o be_v call_v christ_n coat_n some_o say_v it_o be_v but_o a_o device_n to_o delude_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o prince_n and_o to_o conciliate_v some_o authority_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o that_o see_v say_v osiand_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la the_o same_o year_n be_v another_o tumult_n at_o spira_n the_o commons_o rise_v against_o the_o senate_n because_o they_o be_v burden_v with_o so_o many_o tax_n they_o thrust_v out_o the_o counsellor_n and_o set_v up_o another_o counsel_n and_o take_v the_o key_n of_o the_o town_n into_o their_o own_o power_n the_o emperor_n interpon_v his_o authority_n and_o establish_v the_o senate_n at_o that_o time_n lewes_n xii_o make_v peace_n with_o england_n and_o marry_v marie_n sister_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o conclude_v peace_n with_o the_o venetian_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o two_o senator_n who_o he_o have_v captive_n then_o francis_n i._o perceive_v that_o the_o emperor_n in_o his_o old_a age_n be_v incline_v to_o peace_n enter_v upon_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n and_o fight_v with_o the_o duke_n till_o night_n they_o stand_v both_o in_o arm_n all_o the_o night_n in_o the_o morning_n the_o king_n carry_v it_o and_o short_o have_v possession_n of_o milan_n an._n 1515._o the_o same_o year_n ferdinand_n king_n of_o castille_n die_v at_o madril_n and_o leave_v charles_n then_o 15_o year_n old_a his_o successor_n so_o the_o many_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n be_v unite_v maximilian_n be_v make_v ready_a to_o go_v and_o recover_v milan_n and_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o death_n of_o ladislaus_n king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohem_n who_o young_a son_n be_v espouse_v to_o the_o emperor_n daughter_n he_o appease_v the_o tumult_n there_o make_v peace_n with_o france_n and_o employ_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o time_n in_o ministration_n of_o justice_n and_o reform_v some_o abuse_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o empire_n until_o the_o year_n 15●9_n when_o he_o die_v he_o be_v a_o prince_n abound_v in_o virtue_n and_o so_o bountiful_a that_o if_o he_o have_v be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o earth_n he_o never_o will_v have_v have_v treasure_n so_o courageous_a that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v timorous_a of_o singular_a sagacity_n and_o judgement_n yet_o will_v always_o ask_v counsel_n of_o they_o who_o love_v he_o and_o be_v able_a to_o advise_v he_o love_v learning_n and_o be_v liberal_a towards_o they_o who_o be_v expert_a in_o the_o liberal_a science_n pet._n mexia_fw-la then_o all_o the_o electour_n make_v choice_n of_o frederik_n duke_n of_o saxony_n but_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v it_o say_v erasm_n in_o epist._n roffensi_fw-la episc_n date_a an._n 1519._o chap._n iii_o of_o diverse_a country_n raymond_n cardinal_n s_o mariae_fw-la novae_n and_o bishop_n of_o curca_n be_v send_v legate_n they_o the_o sell_v of_o indulgence_n and_o the_o account_n of_o they_o by_o pope_n alexander_n vi_o into_o germany_n in_o the_o year_n 1501._o and_o from_o thence_o into_o dacia_n suecia_n and_o prussia_n with_o power_n to_o sell_v indulgence_n unto_o all_o which_o have_v not_o be_v in_o rome_n at_o the_o jubilee_n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o prince_n hear_v of_o his_o earand_n send_v unto_o he_o when_o he_o be_v at_o trent_n and_o forbid_v he_o to_o come_v into_o germany_n without_o doubt_n perceive_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o cunning_a trick_n to_o squeeze_v money_n out_o of_o the_o country_n nevertheless_o after_o some_o missive_n send_v to_o and_o fro_o he_o come_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o then_o to_o norenbergh_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o mentz_n and_o then_o more_o northward_o and_o leave_v abundance_n of_o these_o indulgence_n print_v on_o parchment_n to_o be_v sell_v before_o his_o return_n nic._n besel_n in_o addit_fw-la naucler_n tell_v of_o his_o come_n and_o how_o he_o obtain_v liberty_n but_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o his_o account_n but_o orth._n gratius_n in_o epistol_n ad_fw-la lector_fw-la before_o the_o work_n of_o petr._n de_fw-fr aliaco_n help_v say_v when_o raymond_n return_v with_o vast_a sum_n of_o money_n the_o college_n of_o the_o cardinal_n ask_v he_o what_fw-mi say_v the_o barbarian_n when_o these_o ware_n of_o indulgence_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o he_o answer_v all_o the_o world_n so_o for_o as_o i_o have_v be_v complain_v of_o the_o prodigality_n of_o cardinal_n and_o certanly_a if_o they_o see_v you_o not_o amend_v our_o republic_n will_v be_v in_o danger_n they_o frown_v on_o he_o and_o his_o friend_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o reformation_n which_o be_v a_o odious_a purpose_n at_o rome_n 2._o many_o trick_n do_v the_o friar_n devise_v to_o delude_v the_o world_n for_o example_n i_o friar_n juglery_n of_o friar_n will_v name_v but_o one_o at_o berna_n in_o the_o year_n 1507._o the_o dominicane_n think_v what_o way_n to_o ingratiat_a themselves_o unto_o the_o people_n and_o be_v prefer_v unto_o the_o franciscanes_n and_o so_o may_v draw_v the_o oblation_n of_o the_o people_n unto_o themselves_o they_o cause_v one_o who_o be_v late_o enter_v among_o they_o believe_v that_o s._n marry_o and_o s._n barbara_n and_o s._n catharin_n of_o sienna_n do_v appear_v and_o speak_v unto_o he_o and_o bring_v unto_o he_o the_o hostie_a or_o eucharist_n bleed_v as_o the_o very_a blood_n of_o christ_n and_o command_v he_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o senate_n of_o the_o town_n and_o report_v such_o and_o such_o thing_n especial_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n and_o the_o franciscanes_n as_o liar_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v in_o the_o town_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n shall_v be_v worship_v as_o also_o they_o make_v a_o image_n of_o the_o virgin_n with_o a_o device_n to_o drop_v as_o it_o be_v weep_v tear_n the_o thing_n be_v belleve_v as_o truth_n that_o red-coloured_n water_n be_v adore_v as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v christ_n blood_n and_o drop_n of_o it_o send_v hither_o and_o thite_a as_o a_o rare_a and_o precious_a gift_n likewise_o be_v great_a concourse_n of_o people_n to_o see_v their_o lady_n weep_v thus_o the_o dominicane_n be_v think_v the_o only_a man_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o or_o four_o year_n the_o franciscanes_n have_v use_v such_o juglery_n before_o and_o for_o respect_n to_o themselves_o be_v loath_a to_o bewray_v it_o but_o at_o last_o they_o seek_v it_o and_o reveal_v it_o all_o then_o the_o provincial_n and_o three_o other_o dominicane_n be_v take_v and_o burn_v an._n 1509_o when_o the_o deceiver_n be_v torture_v they_o confess_v other_o juglery_n but_o the_o pope_n legate_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o be_v divulge_v it_o be_v history_n be_v
he_o hear_v that_o his_o book_n be_v burn_v at_o colen_n lovan_n and_o luik_n he_o assemble_v the_o professor_n of_o wittenberg_n decemb._n 10._o and_o in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n he_o cause_v public_o to_o be_v burn_v the_o last_o bull_n of_o leo_n the_o x._o the_o decree_n of_o gratian_n decretal_n extravagant_n summa_fw-la angelica_n and_o some_o book_n of_o eccius_n and_o then_o he_o publish_v unto_o the_o world_n the_o reason_n why_o he_o have_v do_v so_o by_o this_o provocation_n of_o luther_n say_v p._n soave_fw-it and_o for_o other_o just_a cause_n all_o man_n of_o sound_a judgement_n say_v a_o council_n be_v necessary_a not_o only_o to_o compose_v controversy_n but_o to_o provide_v against_o the_o abuse_n that_o have_v be_v for_o such_o à_fw-fr long_a time_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o necessity_n be_v the_o more_o apparent_a because_o their_o mutual_a writing_n do_v but_o kindle_v the_o strife_n more_o see_v martin_n say_v he_o fail_v not_o to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o much_o write_n and_o the_o more_o earnest_n he_o be_v in_o the_o cause_n he_o advance_v the_o more_o he_o be_v the_o more_o enlighten_v and_o find_v the_o more_o matter_n of_o disputation_n and_o discover_v more_o error_n even_o beyond_o his_o own_o intention_n for_o howbeit_o he_o profess_v to_o do_v all_o through_o the_o zeal_n of_o god_n house_n yet_o every_o one_o may_v perceive_v that_o he_o be_v drive_v thereunto_o by_o necessity_n when_o duke_n frederik_n be_v go_v to_o the_o emperor_n coronation_n he_o meet_v with_o erasmus_n at_o colen_n and_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o think_v of_o luther_n erasmus_n say_v it_o be_v true_a what_o he_o teach_v but_o i_o wish_v he_o be_v moderate_a why_o say_v the_o prince_n do_v the_o clergy_n hate_v he_o so_o erasmus_n say_v he_o have_v commit_v two_o great_a fault_n he_o touch_v the_o pope_n crown_n and_o the_o monk_n belly_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o all_o the_o papal_a kingdom_n be_v bitter_a against_o he_o the_o next_o day_n erasmus_n write_v unto_o conrade_n peutinger_n one_o of_o the_o emperor_n counsellor_n and_o advise_v to_o cause_n luther_n business_n to_o be_v examine_v by_o learned_a and_o indifferent_a man_n in_o the_o follow_a diet_n at_o worm_n luther_n be_v advise_v by_o many_o to_o teach_v and_o write_v more_o moderate_o and_o he_o excuse_v himself_o in_o some_o letter_n in_o one_o unto_o spalatin_n he_o say_v if_o i_o must_v continue_v in_o teach_v i_o understand_v not_o your_o and_z other_o counsel_n to_o wit_n that_o holy_a divinity_n can_v be_v teach_v without_o offence_n the_o scripture_n do_v especial_o pursue_v the_o error_n of_o religion_n this_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o endure_v i_o have_v give_v up_o myself_o unto_o god_n he_o will_v be_v do_v who_o do_v entreat_v he_o to_o make_v i_o a_o teacher_n see_v he_o have_v make_v i_o let_v he_o have_v i_o or_o if_o he_o repent_v that_o he_o have_v make_v i_o let_v he_o undo_v i_o again_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o be_v afraid_a for_o trouble_n that_o it_o fill_v the_o sail_n of_o my_o heart_n with_o a_o incredible_a gale_n that_o now_o i_o understand_v why_o the_o scripture_n compare_v devil_n unto_o the_o wind_n for_o while_o they_o blow_v forth_o in_o rage_n they_o carry_v other_o unto_o patience_n this_o be_v only_o my_o care_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v my_o friend_n in_o these_o cause_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o i_o as_o he_o and_o be_v you_o please_v to_o help_v here_o as_o you_o may_v and_o in_o another_o letter_n date_v unto_o the_o same_o spalatin_n febr._n 15._o he_o say_v there_o will_v be_v a_o new_a &_o great_a fire_n but_o who_o can_v resist_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n i_o entreat_v you_o let_v the_o business_n passe-on_a with_o its_o own_o motion_n it_o be_v god_n cause_n only_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v see_v we_o be_v drive_v and_o move_v rather_o than_o do_v move_v abra._n schultet_fw-la annal._n x._o the_o same_o year_n christiern_n king_n of_o denmarck_n send_v unto_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n for_o a_o preacher_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o one_o m._n martin_n be_v send_v he_o in_o coppenhagen_n do_v preach_v upon_o the_o festival_n day_n in_o the_o afternoon_n with_o great_a applause_n of_o the_o people_n the_o canon_n do_v not_o meddle_v with_o his_o doctrine_n but_o they_o do_v deride_v his_o manner_n of_o delivery_n john_n thurzo_n bishop_n of_o vratislavia_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n who_o hearken_v unto_o these_o new_a preacher_n and_o maintain_v they_o and_o die_v august_n 2._o caspar_n hedio_fw-la be_v a_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n in_o basile_n be_v call_v to_o be_v preacher_n in_o the_o chief_a church_n of_o mentz_n and_o by_o advise_v of_o vlrick_n hutten_n albert_n bishop_n there_o send_v for_o wolfgang_n capito_n to_o be_v his_o preacher_n and_o counsellor_n capito_n embrace_v the_o call_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v the_o fair_a occasion_n to_o sow_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o the_o senate_n of_o zurik_n give_v command_v unto_o all_o the_o preacher_n within_o their_o jurisdiction_n to_o lay_v aside_o all_o the_o device_n of_o man_n and_o free_o to_o preach_v what_o they_o can_v confirm_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o in_o time_n of_o lent_n they_o despise_v the_o old_a ordinance_n for_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n hugh_n bishop_n of_o constance_n command_v all_o man_n by_o his_o edict_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o a_o general_n council_n be_v convene_v and_o for_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o send_v his_o commissioner_n unto_o zurik_n zuinglius_fw-la maintain_v before_o the_o commissioner_n what_o he_o have_v teach_v and_o the_o senate_n entreat_v the_o bishop_n to_o call_v a_o synod_n and_o there_o let_v the_o learned_a examine_v and_o declare_v what_o the_o people_n shall_v believe_v then_o zuinglius_fw-la write_v of_o himself_o unto_o myconius_n say_v i_o have_v give_v up_o myself_o unto_o god_n and_o do_v wait_v all_o evil_a both_o from_o churchman_n and_o laity_n pray_v for_o this_o one_o thing_n from_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v enable_v i_o to_o suffer_v with_o a_o courageous_a heart_n and_o as_o he_o please_v either_o break_v i_o or_o preserve_v i_o who_o be_o a_o pot_n in_o his_o hand_n if_o they_o shall_v excommunicate_v i_o i_o will_v think_v on_o the_o very_a learned_a and_o godly_a hilarius_n that_o be_v exile_v from_o france_n into_o africa_n and_o on_o lucius_n who_o be_v beat_v from_o rome_n be_v bring_v again_o with_o great_a glory_n not_o that_o i_o compare_v myself_o unto_o they_o but_o i_o will_v comfort_v myself_o by_o their_o example_n which_o be_v better_o and_o suffer_v worse_o and_o if_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o rejoice_v in_o any_o thing_n i_o will_v rejoice_v to_o suffer_v reproach_n for_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n abr._n schultet_fw-la the_o same_o author_n say_v the_o first_o nation_n that_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o gospel_n be_v east_n friesland_n where_o the_o prince_n edsard_n read_v diligent_o luther_n book_n and_o thereby_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n do_v forsake_v the_o rite_n of_o superstition_n and_o permit_v these_o book_n to_o be_v sell_v &_o read_v yea_o by_o his_o example_n and_o exhortation_n do_v encourage_v the_o nobility_n of_o the_o land_n to_o read_v they_o and_o other_o also_o who_o can_v understand_v the_o first_o preacher_n there_o be_v henry_n brune_n unto_o the_o auriaci_n lubbert_n cant_v at_o leer_n jo._n steven_n at_o norda_n jo._n sculto_n at_o wenera_n albeit_o afterward_o he_o fall_v away_o but_o the_o most_o eminent_a be_v george_n aportan_n at_o embden_n he_o have_v be_v a_o monk_n at_o zwoll_n and_o the_o prince_n make_v choice_n of_o he_o to_o be_v tutor_n unto_o his_o child_n then_o give_v himself_o to_o search_v the_o truth_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o communicate_v unto_o other_o what_o god_n give_v he_o to_o understand_v and_o at_o last_o become_v preacher_n of_o embden_n the_o priest_n oppose_v he_o but_o by_o permission_n of_o the_o prince_n he_o preach_v in_o the_o open_a field_n and_o afterward_o he_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o people_n into_o the_o church_n bernard_n campius_fw-la maintain_v he_o with_o a_o guard_n lest_o the_o priest_n or_o their_o follower_n shall_v have_v make_v any_o disturbance_n herman_n henrik_v one_o of_o the_o priest_n forsake_v the_o idolatry_n and_o become_v his_o colleague_n the_o other_o priest_n be_v by_o degree_n put_v from_o the_o altar_n some_o go_v to_o other_o place_n and_o they_o who_o stay_v have_v liberty_n to_o exercise_v their_o blind_a devotion_n within_o the_o cloister_n of_o the_o franciscan_n the_o prince_n do_v press_v none_o but_o he_o do_v most_o aid_v those_o who_o be_v for_o the_o reformation_n and_o the_o superstition_n have_v place_n within_o private_a wall_n
put_v away_o the_o private_a mass_n and_o they_o go_v about_o the_o do_n of_o it_o but_o the_o elector_n do_v oppose_v they_o say_v i_o will_v leave_v nothing_o undo_v that_o may_v be_v for_o god_n glory_n but_o see_v that_o this_o particular_a be_v so_o full_a of_o difficulty_n i_o think_v good_a not_o to_o be_v too_o hasty_a for_o it_o be_v little_a that_o so_o few_o can_v do_v but_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v warrant_v from_o scripture_n certain_o you_o shall_v have_v more_o to_o side_n with_o you_o and_o then_o the_o change_n shall_v be_v more_o expedient_a i_o can_v not_o tell_v when_o the_o mass_n come_v first_o in_o use_n nor_o when_o the_o manner_n be_v leave_v off_o which_o the_o apostle_n do_v use_v but_o as_o i_o understand_v the_o great_a part_n of_o your_o cloister_n and_o school_n be_v found_v for_o say_v mass_n and_o if_o they_o be_v now_o put_v down_o any_o of_o you_o may_v easy_o think_v what_o hurly_n burly_n will_v follow_v wherefore_o my_o advice_n be_v that_o you_o consult_v again_o on_o this_o matter_n that_o thing_n may_v be_v carry_v with_o godly_a quietness_n after_o more_o deliberation_n the_o university_n do_v supplicate_v that_o with_o his_o permission_n they_o may_v forsake_v the_o mass_n as_o unlawful_a and_o they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o do_v it_o without_o tumult_n and_o if_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v godly_a shall_v not_o be_v omit_v and_o howbeit_o they_o be_v few_o in_o number_n that_o be_v not_o a_o new_a thing_n see_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n have_v oppose_v truth_n and_o piety_n and_o these_o school_n be_v not_o at_o first_o appoint_v for_o mass_n but_o for_o teach_v the_o youth_n and_o about_o 400_o year_n the_o merchandise_n of_o mass_n begin_v and_o albeit_o the_o original_n be_v more_o ancient_a yet_o so_o great_a impiety_n shall_v not_o be_v tolerate_v nor_o practise_v and_o if_o any_o business_n arise_v thereupon_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v unto_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n impugn_v piety_n against_o their_o conscience_n so_o the_o mass_n be_v abolish_v after_o frequent_a deliberation_n after_o carolstad_n luther_n against_o carolstad_n the_o advice_n of_o luther_n and_o with_o the_o elector_n consent_n and_o nevertheless_o luther_n speak_v against_o it_o then_o they_o have_v abolish_v image_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o leave_v off_o auricular_a confession_n luther_n be_v not_o content_a with_o these_o thing_n and_o in_o four_o sermon_n he_o reckon_v image_n among_o indifferent_a thing_n and_o say_v image_n if_o man_n worship_v they_o shall_v be_v demolish_v otherwise_o they_o be_v to_o be_v tolerate_v ....._o it_o be_v true_a nor_o can_v we_o deny_v that_o image_n be_v noxious_a because_o many_o do_v abuse_v they_o but_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v for_o that_o for_o some_o man_n be_v so_o mad_a to_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o star_n shall_v we_o therefore_o cast_v these_o out_o of_o heaven_n carolstad_v hear_v these_o word_n have_v a_o purpose_n to_o vindicate_v himself_o and_o luther_n do_v earnest_o entreat_v he_o to_o cease_v lest_o they_o be_v find_v to_o clash_v one_o against_o another_o nevertheless_o as_o scultet_n have_v observe_v ex_fw-la carol_v libel_n german_n carolstad_n do_v accuse_v luther_n that_o he_o will_v have_v have_v all_o man_n slave_n unto_o his_o authority_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v neither_o do_v nor_o write_v any_o good_a unless_o he_o be_v in_o the_o front_n and_o luther_n tom_n 2._o epist_n p._n 56._o speak_v of_o carolstad_n say_v he_o will_v be_v a_o new_a master_n upon_o a_o sudden_a and_o set_v up_o his_o ordinance_n among_o the_o people_n pressa_fw-la authoritate_fw-la mea_fw-la there_o be_v a_o great_a fault_n in_o carolstad_n which_o osiander_n have_v mark_v in_o epito_n cent._n 16._o lib._n 1._o c._n 32._o to_o wit_n at_o that_o time_n the_o anabaptist_n say_v they_o have_v a_o command_n from_o god_n to_o kill_v all_o the_o wicked_a and_o to_o begin_v a_o new_a world_n wherein_o the_o godly_a only_o shall_v have_v the_o dominion_n carolstad_n approove_v this_o fancy_n and_o when_o he_o see_v that_o his_o authority_n be_v darken_v by_o the_o respect_n of_o luther_n he_o begin_v to_o speak_v against_o the_o school_n of_o learning_n and_o say_v all_o man_n shall_v work_v with_o their_o hand_n he_o will_v not_o be_v call_v as_o before_o doctor_n andrew_n but_o brother_n andrew_n he_o throw_v away_o his_o wont_a habit_n and_o as_o a_o rural_a man_n he_o bring_v wood_n on_o his_o back_n to_o sell_v in_o the_o town_n and_o at_o last_o join_v with_o the_o anabaptist_n luther_n oppose_v they_o mighty_o and_o after_o carolstad_n be_v go_v he_o bring_v into_o use_n again_o image_n for_o ornament_n and_o auricular_a confession_n but_o not_o with_o former_a strictness_n this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o variance_n xiii_o at_o that_o time_n luther_n hear_v that_o in_o bohem_n some_o have_v propound_v bohem._n luther_n write_v un_fw-we to_o bohem._n in_o their_o solemn_a assembly_n to_o receive_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n authority_n or_o else_o there_o will_v never_o be_v a_o end_n of_o their_o schism_n &_o contention_n wherefore_o he_o write_v unto_o they_o in_o august_n an._n 1522._o saying_n their_o name_n be_v odious_a unto_o he_o ere_o he_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o antichrist_n but_o now_o since_o god_n have_v restore_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o judge_v far_o otherwise_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o court_n be_v more_o offend_v with_o he_o then_o with_o they_o his_o adversary_n have_v oft_o say_v that_o he_o have_v flee_v into_o bohem_n as_o indeed_o he_o once_o purpose_v but_o he_o stay_v lest_o they_o have_v call_v his_o visitation_n a_o run_v away_o and_o now_o there_o be_v hope_n that_o the_o german_n and_o bohemian_o shall_v profess_v the_o same_o gospel_n and_o religion_n together_o whereas_o many_o of_o they_o be_v sorry_a for_o the_o division_n among_o they_o it_o be_v not_o without_o just_a cause_n but_o if_o they_o shall_v revolt_v unto_o popery_n the_o number_n of_o their_o sect_n shall_v wax_v rather_o than_o be_v diminish_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o friar_n which_o be_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o religion_n there_o be_v no_o better_a mean_a to_o cure_v that_o evil_a then_o if_o their_o teacher_n will_v set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n pure_o and_o if_o they_o can_v not_o detain_v the_o people_n from_o revolt_a let_v they_o at_o least_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v still_o the_o lord_n supper_n whole_o and_o keep_v the_o memory_n of_o john_n huss_n and_o jerom_n of_o prague_n undefiled_a and_o albeit_o all_o bohem_n shall_v make_v defection_n yet_o he_o will_v commend_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a doctrine_n unto_o posterity_n in_o the_o end_n he_o beseech_v and_o exhort_v they_o to_o persevere_v in_o that_o estate_n of_o religion_n which_o they_o have_v hitherto_o defend_v with_o their_o blood_n and_o not_o by_o revolt_a to_o blemish_v the_o gospel_n when_o it_o begin_v to_o shine_v upon_o other_o nation_n and_o albeit_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o well_o establish_v among_o they_o yet_o god_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o stir_v up_o in_o due_a time_n some_o faithful_a minister_n to_o reform_v religion_n if_o they_o continue_v constant_a what_o answer_v they_o do_v return_v we_o have_v not_o find_v but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a they_o do_v not_o revolt_v say_v sleidan_n in_o comment_n lib._n 3._o fourteen_o the_o gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v avow_v by_o many_o in_o that_o year_n in_o the_o place_n reformation_n in_o other_o place_n court_n of_o lewes_n king_n of_o hungary_n god_n raise_v up_o george_n marquis_n of_o brandeburgh_n to_o join_v with_o the_o vratislavians_n in_o their_o supplication_n for_o liberty_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o begin_v the_o reformation_n there_o hartmund_n à_fw-fr cronbergh_n a_o noble_a man_n do_v prevail_v powerful_o at_o cronbergh_n the_o people_n of_o strawsburgh_n be_v much_o commend_v that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o many_o discouragement_n on_o every_o side_n they_o do_v receive_v reformation_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o mathias_n zellius_fw-la and_o symphorian_n a_o old_a man_n who_o have_v be_v many_o year_n priest_n of_o s._n martin_n there_o and_o other_o after_o they_o who_o have_v also_o be_v priest_n or_o monk_n john_n froschius_n a_o carmelite_n preach_v in_o augsburg_n andrew_n osiander_n in_o nurimburgh_n and_o gallus_n korn_n a_o franciscan_a join_v with_o he_o hartman_n iback_n à_fw-fr monk_n of_o s._n catherin_n have_v the_o favour_n of_o amandus_n holtz-hausen_a and_o other_o senator_n preach_v in_o frankford_n on_o moen_n in_o wessenbergh_n on_o the_o border_n of_o alsatia_n and_o the_o palatinat_n begin_v to_o preach_v henry_n motherer_n a_o priest_n and_o they_o call_v martin_n bucer_n from_o wittenberg_n but_o in_o
follow_v the_o king_n repli_v martin_n luther_n and_o john_n caluin_n profess_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o forty_o article_n and_o of_o these_o 40._o they_o differ_v between_o themselves_o in_o one_o only_a wherefore_o both_o party_n shall_v bend_v their_o mind_n first_o against_o the_o pope_n that_o when_o he_o be_v overcome_v they_o may_v serious_o consider_v confer_v and_o come_v to_o agreement_n in_o that_o article_n and_o so_o at_o last_o the_o church_n may_v enjoy_v the_o primitive_a purity_n xlvi_o in_o the_o end_n of_o august_n an._n 1561._o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o 1561._o the_o conference_n at_o possiac_n 1561._o that_o great_a counsel_n begin_v the_o public_a conference_n in_o possiac_n the_o prelate_n bring_v their_o clergy_n from_o all_o part_n of_o france_n to_o dispute_v the_o article_n in_o controversy_n and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v grant_v unto_o these_o for_o the_o reformation_n there_o be_v the_o king_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o his_o brother_n the_o duke_n of_o orleans_n and_o his_o sister_n margarit_n and_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o his_o queen_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n with_o other_o peer_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o turnon_n with_o arch_a bishop_n and_o bishop_n about_o 50._o beside_o many_o deputy_n from_o other_o prelate_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o popish_a doctor_n from_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v send_v peter_n martyr_n then_o minister_n at_o zurik_n theodore_n beza_n minister_n at_o geneve_n augustin_n marlorat_n mi._n at_o rouen_n nic._n gelasius_n jo._n merlin_n and_o other_o about_o twenty_o the_o minister_n begin_v with_o a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o king_n that_o the_o disputation_n may_v have_v place_n hort_o and_o those_o condition_n be_v observe_v the_o prelate_n sit_v not_o as_o judge_n but_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsellor_n by_o his_o authority_n shall_v rule_v and_o order_v the_o conference_n 2._o that_o the_o controversy_n be_v examine_v according_a to_o god_n word_n only_o 3._o what_o ever_o shall_v be_v determine_v it_o shall_v be_v write_v by_o the_o king_n notary_n in_o his_o public_a commentary_n after_o some_o day_n the_o queen_n promise_v in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o these_o shall_v be_v perform_v the_o prelate_n complain_v and_o say_v such_o liberty_n to_o dispute_n shall_v not_o be_v grant_v unto_o such_o who_o be_v already_o condemn_v thus_o the_o dispute_n be_v differ_v some_o day_n the_o first_o session_n begin_v september_n 9_o the_o king_n in_o few_o word_n do_v show_v his_o grief_n for_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o declare_v what_o thing_n have_v need_v of_o reformation_n and_o he_o promise_v to_o maintain_v their_o liberty_n with_o no_o less_o care_n than_o his_o ancestor_n have_v do_v the_o chancellor_n do_v more_o full_o show_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v according_a to_o the_o endeavour_n of_o his_o ancestor_n to_o remove_v controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o albeit_o their_o aim_n be_v such_o yet_o the_o success_n be_v not_o as_o they_o wish_v but_o rather_o more_o trouble_v wax_v wherefore_o he_o wish_v now_o that_o all_o man_n will_v diligent_o apply_v themselves_o to_o settle_v these_o trouble_n in_o time_n for_o this_o end_n he_o have_v call_v they_o and_o in_o his_o royal_a person_n do_v accompany_v they_o that_o all_o thing_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n may_v be_v reform_v especial_o by_o this_o public_a conference_n and_o to_o look_v for_o remedy_n from_o a_o general_a council_n it_o be_v as_o vain_a as_o if_o a_o sick_a man_n have_v sufficient_a help_n at_o home_n will_v travel_v into_o the_o indies_n for_o it_o we_o may_v provide_v better_o for_o ourselves_o than_o other_o of_o foreign_a country_n can_v do_v they_o know_v not_o so_o well_o our_o cause_n nor_o condition_n of_o our_o people_n and_o great_a profit_n have_v often_o come_v by_o national_a counsel_n then_o by_o the_o general_a wherefore_o let_v the_o disputant_n on_o both_o side_n joint_o aim_v at_o concord_n in_o the_o truth_n let_v not_o the_o great_a party_n despise_v the_o lesser_a neither_o let_v any_o man_n use_v curiosity_n but_o judge_n of_o every_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o albeit_o the_o wish_a fruit_n do_v not_o follow_v yet_o this_o good_a shall_v ensue_v that_o all_o pretext_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o those_o who_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v condemn_v unheard_a etc._n etc._n osiand_n lib._n cit_fw-la c._n 46._o ex_fw-la beuther_n the_o cardinal_n turnon_n in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n and_o prince_n that_o it_o have_v please_v they_o to_o call_v this_o conference_n and_o to_o honour_v it_o with_o their_o presence_n but_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o speak_v of_o the_o matter_n propound_v nor_o will_v speak_v of_o it_o until_o first_o he_o be_v advise_v with_o his_o colleague_n the_o cardinal_n archbishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n and_o see_v the_o chancellor_n have_v at_o royal_a command_n deliver_v such_o word_n he_o crave_v a_o copy_n in_o writ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v consider_v of_o they_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n crave_v the_o same_o the_o french_a commentar_n lib._n 3._o then_o the_o minister_n be_v bid_v to_o speak_v theodore_n beza_n fall_v down_o on_o his_o kny_n and_o pray_v public_o then_o after_o the_o preface_n for_o attention_n he_o speak_v general_o of_o religion_n and_o name_v some_o particulares_fw-la wherein_o both_o party_n agree_v then_o the_o difference_n 1._o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n which_o we_o say_v he_o in_o name_n of_o the_o minister_n ascribe_v whole_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o we_o differ_v not_o in_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n but_o in_o the_o original_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v they_o and_o what_o be_v good_a work_n and_o to_o what_o use_n be_v they_o do_v 3._o of_o the_o authority_n and_o perfection_n of_o god_n word_n 4._o of_o the_o nature_n and_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o the_o end_n he_o fall_v on_o his_o knee_n again_o before_o the_o king_n and_o present_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o french_a church_n have_v pen_v an._n 1555_o and_o have_v present_v unto_o king_n francis_n in_o this_o oration_n when_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n he_o say_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o heaven_n be_v above_o the_o earth_n at_o these_o word_n the_o prelate_n be_v so_o commove_v that_o they_o begin_v a-disturbance_n and_o be_v silence_v until_o he_o have_v come_v to_o a_o end_n then_o turnon_n with_o indignation_n say_v for_o reverence_v unto_o the_o king_n command_v they_o have_v consent_v that_o those_o new-evangelist_n shall_v speak_v but_o not_o without_o sting_n of_o conscience_n for_o it_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o they_o will_v vent_v thing_n unworthy_a of_o the_o king_n most_o christian_a ear_n and_o scandalous_a unto_o many_o therefore_o the_o prelate_n beseech_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o that_o fellow_n and_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n until_o the_o prelate_n shall_v give_v a_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o will_v appoint_v the_o time_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v for_o reverence_n unto_o his_o majesty_n they_o will_v not_o have_v hear_v that_o man_n blasphemy_n but_o have_v go_v away_o and_o they_o beseech_v the_o king_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o forefather_n the_o which_o he_o pray_v the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o grant_v lib._n cit_fw-la the_o queen_n be_v desirous_a to_o appease_v the_o prelate_n say_v no_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o councillor_n and_o parliament_n of_o paris_n neither_o do_v they_o intend_v a_o change_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o abolish_v dissension_n in_o the_o next_o session_n september_n 17._o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n speak_v in_o name_n of_o the_o prelate_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o two_o article_n of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v the_o church_n consist_v not_o of_o the_o elect_a only_o because_o in_o the_o lord_n barn_n chaff_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o wheat_n and_o nevertheless_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v but_o if_o some_o part_n do_v err_v the_o body_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o a_o corrupt_a member_n if_o any_o evil_a shall_v creepin_a we_o shall_v have_v recourse_n unto_o antiquity_n and_o the_o mother_n church_n among_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n always_o have_v have_v the_o first_o place_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o in_o any_o particular_a church_n against_o the_o ignorance_n of_o
caspar_n contaren_n reynold_n poole_n peter_n bembus_n and_o frederik_n fregosius_n who_o all_o be_v sensible_a that_o the_o church_n need_v some_o reformation_n then_o martyr_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o liberty_n of_o preach_v but_o can_v not_o enjoy_v it_o long_a time_n for_o he_o become_v dangerous_o sick_a and_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o physician_n the_o superior_n of_o his_o order_n see_v that_o the_o air_n of_o that_o city_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o he_o make_v he_o general_a visitor_n of_o the_o order_n in_o that_o office_n he_o so_o demean_v himself_o that_o good_a man_n much_o commend_v his_o integrity_n constancy_n and_o gravity_n and_o other_o fear_v he_o yet_o dare_v not_o discover_v their_o malice_n not_o long_o after_o in_o a_o public_a convention_n of_o that_o order_n he_o be_v make_v prior_n of_o a_o monastery_n in_o luca_n some_o consent_v unto_o this_o promotion_n out_o of_o love_n other_o think_v it_o will_v be_v his_o ruin_n because_o of_o a_o enmity_n between_o florence_n and_o luca._n but_o he_o engage_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n there_o that_o he_o be_v no_o less_o belove_v than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v bear_v among_o they_o in_o that_o college_n be_v many_o learned_a man_n and_o hopeful_a youth_n and_o he_o take_v care_n that_o the_o young_a sort_n be_v instruct_v in_o the_o three_o language_n for_o which_o end_n he_o have_v paul_n lacisius_fw-la of_o verona_n to_o read_v latin_a celsus_n martinengus_n to_o read_v greek_a and_o immanuel_n tremellius_n the_o hebrew_n and_o for_o divinity_n he_o himself_o daily_o expound_v the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n and_o every_o night_n before_o supper_n he_o expound_v a_o part_n of_o the_o psalm_n very_o many_o of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o senator_n and_o nobility_n resort_v unto_o his_o lectur_n and_o he_o preach_v public_o every_o lord_n day_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n can_v not_o endure_v he_o and_o lay_v snare_n for_o he_o nor_o can_v conceil_v their_o malice_n when_o he_o be_v admonish_v by_o his_o friend_n he_o choose_v to_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v to_o strawsburgh_n what_o fruit_n his_o teach_n bring_v forth_o may_v be_v know_v by_o this_o that_o in_o one_o year_n space_n after_o his_o departure_n eighteen_o fellow_n of_o that_o college_n leave_v it_o and_o go_v into_o the_o reform_a place_n among_o who_o be_v celsus_n martinengus_n afterward_o minister_n of_o the_o italian_a church_n in_o geneva_n hieron_n zanchius_n im._n tremellius_n etc._n etc._n many_o citizen_n also_o go_v into_o exile_n voluntary_o that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v the_o truth_n in_o safety_n exit_fw-la vita_fw-la ●e_n martyris_fw-la another_o instance_n be_v in_o bonnonia_n in_o the_o year_n 1554._o the_o pope_n governor_n attempt_v to_o make_v innovation_n there_o which_o the_o people_n will_v not_o receive_v contrary_a to_o their_o former_a law_n the_o innovator_n say_v they_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o former_a law_n but_o have_v authority_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v king_n of_o the_o country_n and_o may_v change_v statute_n and_o ordinance_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n against_o this_o tyranny_n both_o the_o learned_a man_n and_o the_o people_n oppose_v themselves_o and_o in_o the_o monastery_n of_o the_o black_a friar_n be_v a_o general_a convention_n where_o thomas_n de_fw-fr finola_n rector_n of_o the_o university_n set_v forth_o this_o position_n all_o ruler_n whether_o supreme_a or_o inferior_a may_v and_o shall_v be_v reform_v or_o bridle_v to_o speak_v moderate_o by_o they_o by_o who_o they_o be_v choose_v confirm_v or_o admit_v to_o their_o office_n so_o oft_o as_o they_o break_v that_o promise_n make_v by_o oath_n unto_o their_o subject_n because_o the_o prince_n be_v no_o less_o bind_v by_o oath_n unto_o their_o subject_n then_o be_v the_o subject_n unto_o their_o prince_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v keep_v and_o reform_v equal_o according_a to_o law_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v make_v by_o either_o party_n vicen●ius_n de_fw-fr placentia_n sustain_v this_o position_n and_o when_o all_o reason_n that_o the_o pope_n governor_n can_v allege_v be_v hear_v the_o pope_n be_v fain_o to_o take_v up_o the_o matter_n and_o do_v promise_v not_o only_o to_o keep_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v neither_o abrogate_v any_o ancient_a statute_n nor_o make_v any_o new_a one_o without_o their_o consent_n the_o histor_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o scotland_n pag_n 399_o edit_v edinburgh_n 1644._o which_o be_v write_v by_o jo._n knox_n albeit_o somesentence_n have_v be_v add_v by_o another_o after_o he_o at_o that_o time_n john_n craig_n a_o scotish_n man_n who_o afterward_o be_v minister_n of_o edinburgh_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v hereafter_o be_v a_o monk_n and_o consider_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o work_n do_v not_o approve_v it_o and_o show_v unto_o a_o old_a monk_n his_o argument_n in_o the_o contrary_n the_o old_a man_n say_v it_o be_v true_a as_o you_o say_v but_o be_v silent_a lest_o you_o fall_v into_o danger_n for_o the_o day_n be_v evil_a but_o such_o be_v the_o man_n zeal_n unto_o truth_n that_o he_o can_v not_o contain_v himself_o and_o for_o this_o and_o other_o thing_n that_o he_o teach_v he_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n and_o cast_v into_o prison_n with_o many_o hundred_o more_o in_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n 3_o but_o they_o all_o escape_v that_o night_n of_o the_o pope_n death_n when_o the_o citizen_n break_v up_o the_o prison_n xlix_o john_n a_o lasco_n a_o noble_a man_n of_o poland_n intend_v to_o see_v other_o nation_n go_v to_o zurik_v there_o he_o be_v easy_o persuade_v by_o zuinglius_fw-la to_o betake_v himself_o poland_n reformation_n in_o poland_n to_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n and_o where_o as_o he_o may_v have_v be_v advance_v unto_o honour_n in_o his_o native_a country_n yet_o such_o be_v his_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o hatred_n to_o popery_n that_o he_o choose_v to_o embrace_v that_o religion_n which_o have_v its_o soundation_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o year_n 1542._o he_o be_v call_v to_o be_v pastor_n at_o embden_n the_o next_o year_n anna_n the_o widow_n countess_n of_o oldenburgh_n invite_v he_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n there_o which_o he_o endeavour_v with_o great_a diligence_n afterward_o edward_n king_n of_o england_n send_v by_o information_n of_o cranmer_n for_o he_o to_o be_v preacher_n unto_o a_o dutch_a church_n at_o london_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n he_o obtain_v leave_v to_o return_v beyond_o sea_n a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o congregation_n go_v with_o he_o and_o martin_n micron_n another_o preacher_n to_o copenhagen_n but_o the_o king_n will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o stay_v within_o his_o kingdom_n unless_o they_o will_v embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n concern_v the_o local_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o use_v the_o ceremony_n ordain_v by_o he_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n they_o be_v refuse_v by_o the_o hans-town_n and_o church_n of_o saxony_n at_o last_o that_o vex_a congregation_n be_v receive_v at_o embden_n then_o he_o will_v visit_v his_o own_o country_n after_o twenty_o year_n absence_n there_o he_o find_v many_o affect_v a_o reformation_n but_o few_o preacher_n the_o popish_a clergy_n seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o destroy_v he_o or_o to_o have_v he_o banish_v and_o they_o accuse_v he_o unto_o the_o king_n for_o a_o heretic_n the_o king_n say_v though_o they_o call_v he_o a_o heretic_n yet_o the_o state_n have_v not_o decern_v so_o and_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o clear_v himself_o from_o such_o imputation_n in_o the_o year_n 1557._o a_o parliament_n be_v assemble_v at_o warsaw_n there_o be_v great_a contention_n for_o religion_n the_o prince_n who_o they_o call_v vaivode_n crave_v that_o the_o augustan_n confession_n shall_v be_v establish_v the_o bishop_n strive_v against_o it_o so_o that_o the_o prince_n can_v not_o obtain_v any_o liberty_n nevertheless_o after_o the_o parliament_n they_o cause_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v preach_v in_o their_o own_o province_n without_o the_o king_n permission_n john_n á_z las●o_o impugn_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o local_a presence_n and_o cause_v the_o truth_n which_o the_o adversary_n call_v calvinisme_n to_o be_v receive_v by_o many_o and_o unto_o this_o day_n that_o church_n be_v miserable_o rend_v the_o king_n and_o most_o part_n be_v popish_a many_o be_v anabaptist_n few_o be_v ubiquitary_n yet_o a_o great_a many_o hold_n constant_o the_o sound_a truth_n l._n when_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v subdue_v the_o sarracen_n who_o have_v continue_v netherlands_o the_o reformation_n in_o the_o netherlands_o there_o some_o hundred_o year_n and_o expel_v they_o out_o of_o the_o realm_n many_o of_o they_o not_o willing_a to_o leave_v the_o country_n feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n and_o afterward_o they_o be_v convince_v to_o despise_v
none_o so_o the_o reform_a religion_n only_o have_v place_n in_o the_o church_n the_o province_n of_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n hold_v their_o first_o synod_n at_o dort_n an._n 1574._o and_o all_o the_o seven_o have_v their_o first_o synod_n at_o middelburgh_n an._n 1578._o in_o which_o they_o do_v agree_v on_o the_o order_n in_o the_o church_n concern_v which_o two_o synod_n i_o shall_v subjoin_v the_o word_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n of_o south_n and_o north_n holland_n hold_v at_o harlem_n in_o the_o year_n 1582._o as_o a_o summary_n of_o they_o both_o and_o of_o other_o particulares_fw-la these_o be_v the_o almighty_a and_o merciful_a god_n have_v in_o the_o year_n 1566._o under_o the_o sad_a affliction_n which_o be_v then_o prepare_v for_o the_o netherlands_o gracious_o show_v a_o blink_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o gospel_n until_o this_o time_n here_o and_o there_o in_o private_a preach_n but_o the_o world_n unthankfulness_n and_o sin_n do_v they_o turn_v away_o that_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o many_o honest_a person_n when_o other_o flee_v the_o land_n do_v ready_o suffer_v the_o spanish_a tyranny_n over_o the_o land_n through_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o not_o only_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o ●he_n true_a religion_n be_v no_o way_n permit_v but_o also_o it_o be_v most_o strict_o forbid_v in_o private_a and_o punish_v with_o intolerable_a edict_n and_o torment_n nevertheless_o our_o good_a god_n according_a to_o his_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n have_v contrary_a to_o all_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o his_o instrument_n in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o cruel_a persecution_n discover_v by_o many_o more_o and_o more_o the_o idolatry_n superstition_n and_o error_n of_o popery_n and_o do_v enlighthen_v they_o with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n with_o great_a hazart_n of_o their_o good_n body_n and_o life_n and_o they_o pray_v zealous_o unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v look_v upon_o their_o affliction_n and_o deliver_v they_o as_o at_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v without_o the_o counsel_n and_o wit_n of_o any_o man_n for_o when_o the_o persecution_n be_v come_v to_o the_o high_a those_o who_o have_v see_v with_o their_o eye_n the_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n yea_o who_o in_o their_o ignorance_n as_o we_o many_o certain_o think_v at_o least_o of_o many_o have_v willing_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v abuse_v as_o instrument_n thereunto_o that_o those_o i_o say_v have_v resist_v the_o spanish_a government_n and_o refuse_v those_o unreasonable_a exaction_n have_v begin_v to_o consider_v of_o their_o privilege_n and_o former_a liberty_n see_v it_o be_v intend_v not_o only_o to_o root_v out_o the_o true_a religion_n but_o likewise_o to_o bring_v into_o perpetual_a slavery_n all_o the_o indweller_n of_o the_o netherlands_o both_o spiritual_a as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o speak_v and_o politic_n of_o high_a and_o low_a degree_n citizen_n and_o merchant_n tradesman_n and_o other_o with_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o far_o bring_v after_o that_o our_o just_a supplication_n be_v not_o accept_v nor_o hear_v that_o some_o both_o without_o and_o within_o the_o land_n though_o with_o a_o small_a beginning_n do_v gainstand_v the_o tyranny_n by_o those_o have_v the_o lord_n god_n who_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o in_o this_o age_n of_o the_o world_n of_o his_o mercy_n gather_v unto_o himself_o a_o church_n within_o these_o land_n and_o wrought_v another_o work_n in_o set_v up_o by_o they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o trouble_v his_o gospel_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v preach_v again_o first_o in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n which_o when_o many_o who_o hethertil_v know_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n see_v with_o pleasure_n and_o until_o that_o time_n have_v be_v silent_a for_o they_o be_v slack_a in_o the_o just_a cause_n to_o fight_v for_o the_o privilege_n and_o freedom_n of_o the_o land_n and_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o do_v find_v themselves_o unable_a to_o resist_v they_o who_o love_v the_o gospel_n for_o this_o cause_n those_o people_n be_v willing_a to_o apply_v themselves_o with_o all_o faithfulness_n to_o defend_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o native_a land_n see_v that_o also_o they_o may_v serve_v god_n with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n when_o god_n have_v open_v a_o way_n thereunto_o what_o other_o motive_n be_v to_o join_v unto_o this_o cause_n be_v needless_a to_o repeat_v yea_o god_n have_v give_v the_o grace_n that_o by_o those_o foresay_a mean_n he_o have_v not_o only_o make_v a_o beginning_n of_o maintain_v our_o civil_a liberty_n against_o the_o spanish_a government_n over_o all_o the_o netherlands_o howbeit_o the_o matter_n be_v weak_a and_o miserable_a to_o the_o end_n the_o glory_n of_o our_o deliverance_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o god_n only_o but_o he_o have_v also_o more_o and_o more_o promote_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n by_o adjoin_v the_o lord_n the_o state_n of_o the_o land_n and_o his_o princely_a excellency_n to_o delight_v therein_o and_o as_o some_o have_v adjoin_v themselves_o unto_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o have_v they_o also_o see_v that_o the_o land_n may_v hereby_o by_o the_o better_o defend_v from_o the_o enemy_n receive_v and_o sufficient_o establish_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n by_o public_a edict_n and_o other_o furtherance_n and_o so_o popery_n be_v set_v off_o here_o and_o there_o by_o degree_n and_o at_o last_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o be_v forbid_v therefore_o necessary_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v private_o use_v under_o the_o persecution_n must_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o other_o preacher_n who_o be_v accept_v out_o of_o popery_n or_o otherwise_o because_o the_o church_n be_v numerous_a to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v a_o unity_n in_o pure_a doctrine_n and_o uniformity_n of_o service_n and_o the_o church_n and_o their_o leader_n may_v increase_v and_o be_v perfect_v in_o godliness_n of_o conversation_n for_o which_o end_n a_o synod_n or_o assembly_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o province_n of_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o approbation_n of_o his_o princely_a excellency_n and_o of_o the_o high_a state_n of_o holland_n &_o zeeland_n be_v call_v to_o dort_n where_o after_o conference_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o amend_v of_o some_o enormity_n that_o have_v fall_v out_o a_o form_n of_o administration_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v appoint_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v in_o time_n of_o the_o grievous_a war_n where_o with_o these_o land_n be_v then_o burden_v but_o after_o that_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o some_o person_n be_v drive_v either_o through_o their_o weakness_n or_o through_o dregs_o of_o popery_n or_o of_o any_o other_o sect_n which_o have_v retard_v the_o gospel_n think_v it_o not_o good_a that_o in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v such_o ordinance_n and_o a_o consistory_n that_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o minister_n elder_n and_o deacons_n but_o will_v rather_o that_o minister_n shall_v only_o preach_v and_o administrat_fw-la the_o sacrament_n admit_v every_o man_n without_o difference_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v set_v off_o and_o on_o the_o minister_n and_o rule_v the_o church_n as_o they_o shall_v find_v useful_a &_o expedient_a and_o this_o be_v do_v under_o the_o show_n of_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n and_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o the_o minister_n be_v begin_v a_o new_a monkery_n whereby_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n they_o will_v become_v master_n over_o the_o magistrate_n as_o it_o be_v in_o popery_n by_o these_o word_n plausible_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o the_o world_n other_o thought_n be_v bring_v upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o advancement_n of_o it_o be_v hinder_v but_o these_o have_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n be_v distinct_a and_o as_o unto_o the_o magistracy_n which_o be_v a_o service_n of_o god_n belong_v the_o government_n of_o life_n and_o the_o protection_n of_o both_o the_o table_n of_o god_n law_n under_o which_o be_v comprehend_v that_o they_o shall_v advance_v god_n truth_n by_o their_o defence_n and_o maintenance_n so_o unto_o the_o minister_n who_o in_o other_o cause_n be_v subject_a with_o body_n and_o good_n unto_o the_o magistrate_n belong_v their_o proper_a office_n which_o they_o have_v from_o god_n to_o inform_v teach_v stir_v up_o exhort_v and_o move_v the_o conscience_n of_o man_n unto_o holiness_n not_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n or_o will_n of_o any_o man_n but_o after_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o
the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o other_o thing_n belong_v thereunto_o do_v acknowledge_v neither_o pope_n nor_o any_o humane_a magistracy_n nor_o the_o preacher_n themselves_o for_o head_n and_o lord_n but_o only_o jesus_n christ_n after_o who_o law_n will_n and_o commandment_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v rule_v and_o unto_o who_o both_o preacher_n and_o elder_n and_o deacons_n and_o also_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n of_o whatever_o rank_n shall_v be_v obedient_a but_o it_o be_v longsom_n now_o to_o declare_v this_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o hint_n it_o in_o a_o word_n if_o the_o liberty_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v absolute_o depend_v upon_o the_o magistrate_n and_o their_o command_n a_o great_a confusion_n will_v follow_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n may_v soon_o decay_v all_o enormity_n abound_v and_o piety_n will_v fail_v as_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o magistrate_n do_v well_o understand_v and_o may_v know_v yet_o better_o when_o they_o shall_v due_o hear_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o unjust_a complaint_n of_o some_o who_o seem_v to_o stand_v for_o libertinism_n more_o than_o for_o christian_a liberty_n for_o when_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o complaint_n and_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v find_v true_a they_o with_o their_o write_a and_o print_v remonstrance_n will_v not_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o high_a state_n themselves_o so_o the_o church_n must_v apologise_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n howbeit_o we_o do_v it_o not_o unwilling_o and_o will_v rather_o plead_v it_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o purpose_n it_o have_v so_o far_o come_v that_o it_o have_v be_v propound_v unto_o his_o princely_a excellency_n and_o the_o high_a state_n as_o reasonable_a that_o in_o no_o town_n or_o willage_n shall_v be_v any_o convention_n or_o consistory_n but_o with_o advice_n of_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o town_n or_o of_o the_o state_n by_o which_o the_o meeting_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o great_a danger_n but_o his_o excellency_n and_o the_o state_n understand_v the_o cause_n better_o have_v establish_v the_o former_a ordinance_n and_o administration_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v increase_v and_o multiply_v afterward_o by_o the_o pacification_n of_o ghent_n and_o by_o the_o death_n of_o those_o great_a commander_n than_o governor_n of_o the_o other_o netherlands_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o only_o in_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n be_v popery_n forsake_v and_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n accept_v but_o also_o the_o good_a subject_n in_o brabant_n flanders_n gelderland_n friesland_n the_o bishoprik_v of_o utrecht_n the_o land_n of_o overisel_n etc._n etc._n have_v begin_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n whereby_o in_o some_o place_n public_o in_o other_o place_n howbeit_o privy_o in_o house_n yet_o in_o great_a assembly_n of_o people_n and_o also_o with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o magistrate_n god_n word_n be_v preach_v etc._n etc._n so_o far_o there_o before_o that_o time_n gaspar_n colhaes_n a_o minister_n at_o leiden_fw-mi who_o have_v be_v a_o priest_n in_o time_n of_o popery_n and_o yet_o have_v profess_v the_o reform_a religion_n in_o time_n of_o the_o persecution_n have_v make_v no_o small_a stir_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o have_v also_o retain_v other_o dregs_o of_o popery_n and_o other_o preacher_n likewise_o so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o netherlands_o be_v seldom_o free_a of_o one_o stichler_n or_o other_o yet_o alwise_o maintain_v and_o keep_v pure_a by_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o synod_n and_o by_o protection_n of_o magistrate_n from_o the_o corruption_n of_o such_o subdolous_a minister_n in_o time_n of_o the_o troubl_v move_v by_o colhaes_n the_o state_n of_o holland_n call_v for_o one_o minister_n out_o of_o each_o classis_fw-la and_o send_v two_o commissioner_n gerhard_n van_fw-mi wingaerd_n and_o leonard_n caesenbrood_n unto_o they_o require_v they_o to_o show_v the_o form_n of_o the_o church-government_n and_o to_o show_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n those_o answer_v the_o church-discipline_n be_v consider_v and_o pen_v by_o the_o synod_n at_o dort_n in_o the_o year_n 1578._o which_o be_v authorize_v by_o the_o high_a ministry_n the_o distinction_n of_o magistracy_n &_o ministry_n state_n and_o they_o have_v be_v traduce_v unjust_o that_o they_o will_v have_v usurp_v dominion_n over_o the_o magistrate_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o magistrate_n as_o any_o other_o subject_n be_v both_o for_o body_n and_o good_n except_o only_o that_o according_a to_o god_n word_n they_o may_v exercise_v the_o office_n commit_v by_o god_n unto_o they_o conform_v unto_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o office_n they_o give_v it_o in_o write_v whereof_o the_o authentic_a copy_n triglandius_n lib._n cit_fw-la say_v he_o have_v not_o see_v but_o he_o give_v the_o summa_fw-la of_o it_o from_o another_o to_o wit_n both_o office_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n both_o be_v preserver_n of_o godly_a righteousness_n both_o shall_v be_v reverence_v for_o conscience_n sake_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o only_o preserve_v godly_a righteousness_n but_o provide_v for_o the_o commonweel-fare_a in_o which_o respect_n churchman_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o in_o body_n &_o good_n the_o magistrat_n office_n be_v to_o establish_v and_o promote_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o example_n so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o outward_a man_n that_o god_n worde_n be_v obey_v but_o the_o office_n of_o minister_n be_v to_o set_v that_o worde_n before_o the_o people_n with_o faithful_a teach_n and_o godly_a conversation_n the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v to_o compel_v the_o despiser_n and_o falsefier_n of_o god_n word_n that_o they_o hinder_v not_o the_o outward_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o any_o do_v disturb_v it_o to_o punish_v they_o with_o imprisonment_n or_o other_o punishment_n in_o hody_n or_o good_n and_o the_o minister_n shall_v exhort_v the_o people_n in_o christ_n name_n to_o serve_v god_n peaceable_o and_o to_o show_v forth_o their_o dutiful_a regard_n of_o god_n word_n and_o shall_v call_v unto_o repentance_n the_o inward_a man_n that_o be_v the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n with_o spiritual_a weapen_v that_o be_v by_o preach_v eternal_a life_n and_o threaten_v everlasting_a death_n the_o magistrate_n office_n be_v to_o ordain_v punishment_n in_o body_n and_o good_n and_o according_a to_o circumstance_n of_o oceasion_n to_o mitigate_v or_o straiten_v they_o and_o the_o minister_n shall_v prudent_o exercise_v the_o exhortation_n and_o menace_n that_o be_v prescribe_v in_o god_n word_n and_o the_o excommunication_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v provide_v that_o the_o external_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o civil_a peace_n be_n keep_v safe_a and_o as_o occasion_n require_v to_o punish_v the_o transgression_n of_o the_o disturber_n and_o minister_n shall_v endeavour_v out_o of_o love_n that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n in_o god_n worde_n the_o soul_n of_o offender_n may_v be_v bring_v unto_o salvation_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v preside_v when_o punishment_n of_o life_n or_o good_n be_v handle_v and_o minister_n govern_v in_o the_o church-counsell_n when_o matter_n of_o conscience_n be_v judge_v the_o minister_n and_o church-counsel_n shall_v appoint_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n worde_n and_o the_o magistrate_n have_v power_n by_o himself_o whether_o present_a or_o absent_a to_o examine_v it_o and_o if_o he_o dissallow_v any_o thing_n therein_o he_o may_v command_v the_o churchman_n to_o reform_v it_o according_a to_o god_n worde_n the_o magistrate_n as_o also_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o seek_v and_o to_o use_v their_o authority_n if_o need_n shall_v be_v that_o minister_n of_o the_o worde_n be_v call_v and_o the_o church_n be_v provide_v with_o they_o and_o also_o to_o punish_v the_o fault_n even_o in_o the_o pulpit_n that_o deserve_v civil_a punishment_n and_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n to_o choose_v person_n sufficient_a for_o the_o office_n and_o then_o to_o present_v those_o before_o the_o magistrate_n that_o he_o may_v approve_v they_o if_o there_o no_o be_v lawful_a impediment_n which_o then_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o minister_n when_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v trouble_v with_o any_o division_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n to_o call_v together_o a_o church-assemble_o and_o to_o rule_v it_o as_o concern_v the_o external_a action_n but_o when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o peace_n it_o belong_v unto_o the_o minister_n to_o call_v the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n and_o to_o preside_v in_o
lion_n at_o rouen_n diep_n meausia_n orleans_n and_o other_o part_n within_o one_o month_n 30000_o thuan_n li._n ci●_n and_o in_o that_o year_n above_o 100000_o protestant_n be_v massacre_v th._n rogers_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n not_o only_o be_v the_o protestant_n murder_v that_o way_n but_o many_o other_o for_o private_a malice_n or_o avarice_n of_o the_o executioner_n some_o of_o the_o governor_n refuse_v to_o obey_v that_o command_n as_o claudius_z count_z de_fw-fr tende_n when_o he_o have_v read_v it_o say_v he_o will_v obey_v the_o former_a edict_n but_o he_o doubt_v that_o this_o other_o be_v only_o colour_v with_o the_o king_n name_n therefore_o at_o the_o king_n command_v he_o be_v poison_v at_o avenion_n within_o few_o day_n mons_fw-la sautheram_n governor_n of_o auvergne_n refuse_v say_v he_o be_v the_o king_n lieutenant_n for_o execution_n of_o justice_n and_o not_o to_o be_v a_o hangman_n addition_n to_o the_o 10_o book_n of_o french_a come_v great_a mirth_n and_o procession_n be_v at_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n hear_v of_o those_o massacre_n by_o the_o king_n commande_fw-fr horseman_n be_v dispatch_v into_o all_o part_n that_o no_o governor_n be_v absent_a from_o his_o charge_n and_o to_o watch_v and_o ward_v diligent_o and_o to_o search_v narrow_o all_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o reform_a and_o to_o punish_v they_o without_o exception_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n they_o be_v apprehend_v who_o keep_v their_o house_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o king_n protection_n many_o be_v murder_v and_o all_o almost_o be_v rob_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v vanquish_v enemy_n so_o that_o nothing_o seem_v to_o remain_v unto_o they_o but_o utter_a confusion_n on_o the_o 10_o day_n of_o september_n charles_n send_v for_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n and_o will_v he_o to_o choose_v one_o of_o three_o either_o mass_n or_o death_n or_o perpetual_a prison_n he_o answer_v he_o will_v never_o choose_v the_o first_o and_o he_o leave_v the_o other_o two_o unto_o the_o king_n pleasure_n thuan._n lib._n 53._o before_o he_o obtain_v liberty_n he_o be_v induce_v to_o subscribe_v that_o abjuration_n whereof_o a_o copy_n be_v in_o the_o 10_o book_n of_o the_o french_a comment_n so_o do_v henry_n king_n of_o navarsway_n with_o the_o time_n these_o two_o easy_o without_o petition_v receive_v pardon_n from_o pope_n gregory_n xiii_o by_o intercession_n of_o king_n charles_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o late_a queen_n of_o navarre_n have_v be_v a_o assembly_n in_o bearn_n and_o by_o free_a consent_n of_o the_o state_n the_o mass_n be_v discharge_v throughout_o all_o that_o realm_n but_o then_o in_o the_o year_n 1572_o october_n 15_o king_n henry_n publish_v a_o contrary_a edict_n forbid_v the_o reform_a religion_n and_o he_o send_v mons_fw-la grammount_n grant_v leave_n unto_o the_o reform_a to_o sell_v their_o land_n within_o a_o year_n and_o then_o remove_v or_o to_o conform_v themselves_o the_o people_n be_v not_o move_v by_o these_o letter_n and_o say_v these_o letter_n be_v extort_a from_o the_o king_n in_o his_o captivity_n thuan-ibi_a nevertheless_o those_o example_n move_v many_o who_o be_v think_v to_o love_v the_o religion_n to_o profess_v the_o contrary_n the_o city_n rochel_n montauban_n sanser_n anduz_n and_o other_o town_n in_o vivaretz_n and_o sevenatz_n continue_v constant_a but_o it_o seem_v unto_o many_o of_o themselves_o great_a folly_n join_v with_o madness_n after_o so_o great_a overthrow_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o so_o many_o other_o to_o think_v upon_o any_o defence_n when_o scarce_o any_o noble_a man_n dare_v own_o the_o religion_n and_o not_o a_o few_o say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a that_o subject_n shall_v bear_v arm_n against_o their_o king_n albeit_o he_o be_v wicked_a as_o it_o have_v appear_v by_o the_o success_n ●n_v a_o word_n all_o of_o they_o be_v uncertain_a what_o to_o do_v and_o inevitable_a destruction_n seem_v to_o be_v bring_v on_o the_o church_n in_o france_n the_o chief_a man_n be_v go_v they_o have_v no_o help_n from_o germany_n nor_o england_n as_o before_o yet_o the_o help_a hand_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o due_a time_n french_a comment_n lib._n 11._o the_o king_n send_v noble_a man_n unto_o those_o city_n command_v they_o to_o receive_v garrison_n and_o a_o lieutenant_n they_o be_v all_o perplex_a on_o both_o side_n death_n seem_v to_o be_v at_o hand_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o yield_v but_o fear_v make_v the●_n to_o delay_v the_o citizen_n of_o castre_n receive_v a_o garrison_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o king_n promise_n they_o be_v all_o put_v to_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n with_o no_o less_o cruelty_n than_o other_o before_o rochel_n be_v ready_a to_o have_v give_v obedience_n but_o when_o they_o be_v inform_v of_o that_o false_a cruelty_n or_o cruel_a deceit_n they_o refuse_v to_o render_v and_o so_o begin_v the_o four_o war_n in_o france_n with_o the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n and_o other_o part_n be_v invade_v with_o huge_a violence_n it_o be_v the_o divine_a providence_n that_o the_o nobility_n fail_v he_o alone_o may_v be_v know_v the_o author_n of_o the_o work_n the_o particular_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o book_n last_o mention_v and_o will_v go_v beyond_o my_o purpose_n to_o repeat_v they_o i_o will_v only_o touch_v the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n and_o the_o end_n of_o those_o war_n the_o siege_n continue_v seven_o month_n in_o it_o two_o thing_n be_v very_o remarkable_a first_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o ordinance_n and_o batter_a piece_n that_o be_v discharge_v against_o they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o 6000._o shot_n only_o 25._o rocheller_n be_v slay_v and_o how_o many_o of_o the_o beseeger_n be_v slay_v it_o be_v uncertain_a but_o it_o may_v be_v conjecture_v that_o 132._o commander_n be_v kill_v of_o who_o the_o chief_a be_v claude_n duke_n do_v aumale_a uncle_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n march_n 3._o 1573._o the_o great_a assault_n be_v seven_o the_o other_o remarkable_a thing_n be_v the_o poor_a sort_n of_o the_o town_n begin_v to_o want_v bread_n and_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o supply_n be_v furnish_v unto_o they_o to_o wit_n every_o day_n in_o the_o river_n they_o have_v plenty_n of_o fish_n surdones_n which_o they_o have_v never_o see_v before_o and_o the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o siege_n be_v raise_v those_o wereseen_a no_o more_o so_o both_o rich_a and_o poor_a have_v plenty_n within_o and_o the_o king_n army_n without_o be_v grieve_v with_o famine_n wherefore_o charles_n send_v word_n unto_o his_o brother_n henry_n command_v he_o either_o to_o take-in_a the_o town_n instant_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a or_o to_o leave_v it_o in_o aprile_a he_o continue_v two_o month_n long_o until_o word_n be_v bring_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o poland_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n sanserre_n suffer_v a_o hard_a siege_n that_o parent_n do_v eat_v their_o own_o little_a one_o a_o general_a peace_n be_v proclaim_v and_o liberty_n of_o religion_n be_v grant_v in_o july_n an._n 1573._o thuan._n lib._n 54._o the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n be_v conceive_v in_o general_a term_n without_o name_v any_o city_n those_o of_o nismes_n and_o languedoc_n take_v exception_n at_o that_o thereupon_o all_o the_o protestant_a town_n write_v unto_o the_o duke_n of_o anjou_n give_v he_o thanks_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o procure_v unto_o they_o leave_v to_o assemble_v in_o a_o fit_a place_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v the_o particulares_fw-la of_o the_o pacification_n in_o convenient_a time_n and_o that_o he_o will_v grant_v they_o his_o letter_n patent_n for_o their_o assurance_n then_o many_o conveened_a from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n as_o the_o time_n will_v suffer_v and_o so_o they_o provide_v for_o themselves_o fre._n come_v lib._n 12._o the_o next_o year_n charles_n die_v in_o that_o book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o his_o death_n thus_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o die_v of_o a_o bloody_a flix_a and_o it_o be_v report_v for_o truth_n by_o the_o great_a part_n that_o the_o blood_n be_v hue_v out_o of_o sundry_a part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o in_o his_o bed_n he_o can_v have_v little_a rest_n but_o horrible_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v even_o from_o his_o childhood_n thuan_n lib._n 57_o witness_v of_o his_o unrest_n and_o affrighment_n in_o the_o night_n and_o that_o heendeavour_v to_o settle_v it_o by_o music_n and_o because_o it_o be_v suspect_v that_o he_o have_v be_v poison_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v vomit_v the_o blood_n with_o the_o more_o ease_n he_o be_v bolster_v up_o with_o pillow_n that_o his_o foot_n lay_v high_a than_o his_o head_n another_o have_v comprise_v the_o cause_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n in_o those_o verse_n naribus_fw-la ore_fw-la oculis_fw-la atque_fw-la auribus_fw-la
preacher_n shall_v be_v place_v oppidatim_o how_o can_v it_o well_o be_v think_v that_o three_o or_o four_o preacher_n may_v suffice_v for_o a_o shire_n ......_o some_o there_o be_v that_o be_v misliker_n of_o the_o godly_a reformation_n in_o religion_n once_o establish_v wish_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v no_o preacher_n at_o all_o and_o so_o by_o deprive_v of_o minister_n impugn_v religion_n non_fw-la aperto_fw-la marte_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o cuniculis_fw-la much_o like_o the_o bishop_n in_o your_o father_n time_n who_o will_v have_v have_v the_o english_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n called-in_a as_o evil_a translate_v and_o the_o new_a translation_n to_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o which_o they_o never_o intend_v to_o perform_v a_o number_n there_o be_v and_o that_o exceed_v great_a altogether_o worldly-minded_n ......_o and_o because_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n which_o to_o all_o christian_n conscience_n be_v sweet_a and_o delectable_a to_o they_o have_v cauterizatas_fw-la conscientias_fw-la be_v bitter_a and_o grievous_a ....._o they_o wish_v that_o there_o be_v no_o preacher_n at_o all_o but_o they_o dare_v not_o direct_o condemn_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v so_o express_o command_v by_o god_n word_n for_o that_o be_v open_a blasphemy_n they_o turn_v themselves_o altogether_o and_o with_o the_o same_o meaning_n as_o other_o do_v against_o the_o person_n of_o they_o that_o be_v admit_v to_o preach_v but_o god_n forbid_v madam_n that_o you_o shall_v open_v your_o ear_n unto_o any_o of_o these_o wicked_a persuasion_n cum_fw-la defecerit_fw-la propheta_fw-la dissipabitur_fw-la populus_fw-la say_v solomon_n prov._n 27._o where_o it_o be_v think_v that_o the_o read_n of_o godly_a homily_n set_v forth_o by_o public_a authority_n may_v suffice_v the_o read_n of_o these_o have_v its_o commodity_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o comparable_a to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v ......_o these_o be_v devise_v by_o godly_a bishop_n in_o your_o homily_n the_o use_n of_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n brother_n day_n only_o to_o supply_v necessite_a by_o want_n of_o preacher_n and_o be_v by_o the_o statute_n not_o to_o be_v prefer_v but_o to_o give_v place_n to_o sermon_n wheresoever_o they_o may_v be_v have_v and_o be_v never_o think_v in_o themselves_o to_o contain_v alone_o sufficient_a instruction_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o it_o be_v find_v then_o as_o it_o be_v now_o that_o this_o church_n have_v be_v by_o appropriation_n not_o without_o sacrilege_n spoil_v of_o the_o live_n which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v appoint_v to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v or_o teach_v which_o appropriation_n be_v first_o annex_v to_o abaye_v and_o after_o come_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o now_o be_v dispose_v to_o private_a man_n possession_n without_o hope_n to_o reduce_v the_o same_o to_o the_o original_a institution_n ....._o concern_v the_o second_o point_n which_o be_v of_o the_o learned_a exercise_n and_o conference_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n i_o have_v minister_n the_o exercise_n of_o minister_n consult_v with_o diverse_a of_o my_o brethren_n the_o bishop_n who_o think_v of_o the_o same_o as_o i_o do_v a_o thing_n profitable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o expedient_a to_o be_v continue_v and_o i_o trust_v your_o majesty_n will_v think_v the_o like_a when_o you_o shall_v be_v inform_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o order_n thereof_o what_o authority_n it_o have_v of_o the_o scripture_n what_o commodity_n it_o bring_v with_o it_o and_o what_o discommodity_n will_v follow_v if_o it_o be_v clean_o take_v away_o the_o author_n of_o this_o exercise_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n where_o it_o be_v use_v who_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o canon_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n now_o in_o force_n have_v authority_n to_o appoint_v exercise_n to_o their_o inferior_a minister_n for_o increase_v of_o learning_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o they_o seem_v expedient_a for_o that_o pertain_v ad_fw-la disciplinam_fw-la clericalem_fw-la so_o after_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o order_n of_o that_o exercise_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o from_o 1._o sam._n 10._o and_o 1._o cor._n 14._o he_o add_v this_o gift_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n in_o s._n paul_n time_n be_v give_v to_o many_o by_o a_o special_a miracle_n without_o study_n ......_o but_o now_o miracle_n cease_v man_n must_v attain_v to_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n ......_o by_o travel_n and_o study_v god_n give_v the_o increase_n so_o must_v man_n attain_v by_o the_o like_a mean_n to_o the_o gift_n of_o expound_v and_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n and_o among_o other_o help_v nothing_o be_v so_o necessary_a as_o these_o above_o name_v exercise_n and_o conference_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o exercise_n of_o student_n in_o divinity_n in_o the_o university_n save_v that_o the_o first_o be_v do_v in_o a_o tongue_n understand_v to_o the_o more_o edify_v of_o the_o unlearned_a hearer_n howsoever_o report_n have_v be_v to_o your_o majesty_n concern_v these_o exercise_n yet_o i_o and_o other_o of_o york_n who_o name_n be_v note_v as_o follow_v 1._o cantuariensis_n 2._o london_n 3._o winch_n 4._o bathon_n 5._o lichfield_n 6._o gloucester_n 7._o lincoln_n 8._o chester_n 9_o exon_n 10._o meneven_a alias_o david_n as_o they_o have_v testify_v unto_o i_o by_o their_o letter_n have_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o these_o profit_n and_o commodity_n follow_v have_v ensue_v of_o they_o 1._o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v more_o skilful_a and_o more_o ready_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o more_o apt_a to_o teach_v their_o flock_n 2._o it_o withdraw_v they_o from_o idleness_n wander_v game_a etc._n etc._n 3._o some_o afore_o suspect_v in_o doctrine_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 4._o ignorant_n minister_n be_v drive_v to_o study_v if_o not_o for_o conscience_n yet_o for_o shame_n and_o fear_n of_o discipline_n 5._o the_o opinion_n of_o lay_a man_n touch_v the_o ableness_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v hereby_o remove_v 6._o nothing_o by_o experience_n beat_v down_o popery_n more_o than_o that_o 7._o minister_n as_o some_o of_o my_o brethren_n do_v confess_v grow_v to_o such_o knowledge_n by_o mean_n of_o those_o exercise_n that_o where_o a_o fore_n be_v not_o able_a minister_n not_o three_o now_o be_v thretty_a able_a and_o meet_a to_o preach_v at_o paul_n cross_n and_o 40_o or_o 50_o beside_o able_a to_o instruct_v their_o own_o cure_n so_o as_o it_o be_v find_v by_o experience_n the_o best_a mean_n to_o increase_v knowledge_n in_o the_o simple_a and_o to_o continue_v it_o in_o the_o learned_a only_o backward_a man_n in_o religion_n and_o contemner_n of_o learning_n in_o the_o country_n abroad_o do_v fret_v against_o it_o which_o in_o truth_n do_v the_o more_o commend_v it_o the_o dissolution_n of_o it_o will_v b●eed_o triumph_v in_o the_o adversary_n and_o great_a sorrow_n and_o grief_n unto_o the_o favourer_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o ezek._n 13._o 18._o cor_fw-la justi_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la contristandum_fw-la although_o some_o have_v abuse_v this_o good_a and_o necessary_a exercise_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o the_o malice_n of_o a_o few_o shall_v prejudice_v all_o abuse_n may_v be_v reform_v and_o that_o which_o be_v good_a may_v remain_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o just_a cause_n of_o offence_n to_o be_v take_v if_o diverse_a man_n make_v diverse_a sense_n of_o one_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o all_o the_o sense_n be_v good_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o analogy_n and_o proportion_n of_o faith_n for_o otherwise_o we_o must_v condemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o church_n who_o most_o common_o expound_v one_o and_o the_o same_o text_n of_o scripture_n diverse_o and_o yet_o all_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n ...._o because_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v ....._o that_o these_o exercise_n for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o exhortation_n and_o comfort_n be_v profitable_a ........._o i_o be_o enforce_v with_o all_o humility_n and_o yet_o plain_o to_o profess_v that_o i_o can_v not_o with_o safe_a conscience_n and_o without_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n give_v my_o assent_n to_o the_o suppress_n of_o these_o exercise_n much_o less_o can_v i_o send_v out_o any_o injunction_n for_o the_o utter_a and_o universal_a subversion_n of_o the_o same_o i_o say_v with_o paul_n i_o have_v no_o power_n to_o destroy_v but_o only_o to_o edify_v and_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n but_o with_o the_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v your_o majesty_n pleasure_n or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n to_o remove_v i_o i_o consider_v with_o myself_o quod_fw-la horrendum_fw-la est_fw-la incidere_fw-la in_o manus_fw-la dei_fw-la viventis_fw-la
answer_v that_o her_o ma._n think_v it_o no_o way_n reasonable_a that_o she_o shall_v defraud_v herself_o of_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o crown_n as_o to_o put_v the_o patronage_n of_o benefice_n forth_o of_o her_o hand_n for_o her_o necessity_n in_o bear_v her_o port_n &_o common_a charge_n will_v require_v the_o retention_n thereof_o and_o that_o in_o a_o good_a part_n in_o her_o own_o hand_n nevertheless_o her_o majesty_n be_v well_o please_v that_o consideration_n be_v have_v of_o she_o own_o necessity_n and_o what_o may_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o reasonable_a sustentation_n of_o the_o ministry_n a_o special_a assignation_n be_v make_v to_o they_o in_o place_n most_o commodious_a with_o which_o her_o majesty_n shall_v not_o meddle_v but_o suffer_v it_o come_v to_o they_o to_o the_o three_o article_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o her_o majesty_n shall_v do_v therein_o as_o shall_v be_v agree_v by_o the_o state_n in_o parliament_n to_o the_o four_o her_o majesty_n liberality_n to_o the_o poor_a shall_v always_o be_v so_o far_o extend_v as_o can_v be_v reasonable_o require_v at_o her_o hand_n to_o the_o five_o and_o six_o article_n her_o majesty_n refer_v the_o take_a order_n therein_o unto_o the_o state_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n the_o nationall_n assembly_n conveene_n assembly_n the_o ix_o assembly_n in_o edinburgh_n septemb_n 25._o jo._n erskin_n be_v choose_v moderator_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o queen_n weregve_v unto_o the_o assembly_n and_o ordain_v to_o be_v register_v and_o they_o return_v this_o answer_n first_o where_o her_o majesty_n say_v that_o she_o be_v not_o persuade_v in_o religion_n nor_o that_o she_o understand_v any_o impiety_n in_o the_o mass_n ......_o it_o be_v no_o small_a grieff_fw-mi to_o the_o christian_a heart_n of_o her_o godly_a subject_n consider_v that_o the_o trumpet_n of_o christ_n evangell_n have_v blow_v so_o long_o in_o this_o country_n and_o his_o mercy_n so_o plain_o offer_v in_o the_o same_o that_o her_o maj._n remain_v yet_o unpersuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o our_o religion_n for_o our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o same_o religion_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v in_o the_o last_o day_n reveel_v from_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o father_n where_o of_o he_o make_v his_o apostl_n messenger_n and_o which_o they_o have_v preach_v &_o establish_v among_o his_o faithful_a until_o his_o come_n again_o and_o this_o differ_v from_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o turk_n the_o blaspheny_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o vain_a superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o that_o only_o our_o religion_n have_v god_n the_o father_n his_o only_a soon_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v in_o his_o prophet_n &_o apostl_n for_o the_o author_n thereof_o and_o their_o doctrine_n &_o promise_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o the_o which_o no_o other_o religion_n upon_o the_o earth_n can_v just_o allege_v or_o plain_o prove_v yea_o whatsoever_o assurance_n papist_n have_v for_o their_o religion_n the_o same_o have_v the_o turk_n for_o maintain_v their_o alcoran_n and_o the_o jew_n far_o great_a for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o ceremony_n whither_o it_o be_v antiquity_n of_o time_n consent_n of_o people_n authority_n of_o promise_n great_a number_n or_o multitude_n consent_v together_o or_o any_o other_o the_o like_a cloak_n that_o they_o can_v pretend_v and_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v dolorous_a that_o her_o majesty_n in_o this_o our_o religion_n be_v not_o persuade_v so_o most_o humble_o we_o require_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n that_o her_o highness_n will_v embrace_v the_o mean_n whereby_o she_o may_v be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n which_o present_o we_o offer_v unto_o her_o grace_n alsweell_o by_o preach_v his_o word_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a mean_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o persvade_v all_o his_o choose_a child_n the_o infallible_a truth_n as_o by_o public_a disputation_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o this_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o deceiver_n of_o her_o majesty_n whensoever_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v expedient_a unto_o her_o grace_n as_o for_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o mass_n we_o be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o in_o that_o idol_n be_v great_a impiety_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o impiety_n the_o author_n or_o father_n thereof_o be_v but_o man_n the_o action_n itself_o the_o opinion_n thereof_o the_o hearet_n and_o gazer_n upon_o it_o do_v avow_v sacrilege_n pronounce_v blasphemy_n and_o commit_v most_o abominable_a idolatry_n as_o we_o have_v ever_o offer_v and_o now_o offer_v ourselves_o to_o prove_v most_o manifest_o and_o where_o her_o majesty_n esteem_v that_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n shall_v dissolve_v the_o confederacy_n and_o alliance_n that_o she_o have_v with_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o other_o prince_n assure_o christ_n true_a religion_n be_v the_o undoubted_a bond_n to_o knit_v up_o perfect_a and_o sure_a confederacy_n &_o friendship_n with_o he_o who_o be_v king_n of_o all_o king_n and_o have_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o prince_n in_o his_o hand_n which_o shall_v be_v more_o precious_a unto_o her_o majesty_n than_o the_o confoederacy_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o without_o which_o neither_o confoederacy_n love_n nor_o kindness_n can_v endure_v concern_v her_o majesty_n answer_n unto_o the_o second_o article_n where_o she_o think_v it_o not_o reasonable_a to_o defraud_v herfelve_n of_o the_o patronage_n of_o benefice_n and_o that_o she_o be_v mind_v to_o retain_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o benefice_n in_o her_o hand_n for_o support_v .........._o our_o mind_n be_v not_o that_o her_o majesty_n or_o any_o other_o patron_n shall_v be_v defraud_v of_o their_o just_a patronage_n but_o we_o mean_v whensoever_o her_o majesty_n or_o any_o other_o patron_n do_v present_a any_o person_n unto_o a_o benefice_n that_o the_o person_n present_v shall_v be_v try_v &_o examine_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o be_v for_o the_o present_a the_o superintendent_o and_o as_o the_o presentation_n unto_o the_o benefice_n appertain_v to_o the_o patron_n so_o the_o collation_n by_o law_n and_o reason_n belong_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v defraud_v of_o the_o collation_n no_o more_o than_o the_o patron_n of_o their_o presentation_n for_o otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o the_o patron_n to_o present_v who_o they_o please_v without_o trial_n or_o examination_n what_o can_v abide_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o mere_a ignorance_n as_o for_o retention_n of_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o benefice_n this_o point_n abhor_v so_o far_o from_o good_a conscience_n of_o god_n law_n as_o from_o the_o public_a order_n of_o all_o common_a law_n that_o we_o be_v loath_a to_o open_v up_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o matter_n by_o many_o word_n but_o we_o most_o reverent_o wish_v that_o her_o majesty_n will_v consider_v the_o matter_n with_o herself_o and_o her_o wise_a counfell_n that_o howbeit_o the_o patronage_n of_o benefice_n may_v appertain_v unto_o herself_o yet_o the_o retention_n thereof_o in_o her_o own_o hand_n undispon_v to_o qualify_a person_n be_v both_o ungodly_a and_o contrary_a to_o all_o public_a order_n and_o bring_v final_a confusion_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o poor_a people_n who_o upon_o those_o mean_n shall_v be_v instruct_v in_o their_o salvation_n and_o where_o her_o majesty_n conclude_v that_o she_o be_v content_a a_o sufficient_a &_o reasonable_a sustentation_n of_o minister_n be_v provide_v by_o assignation_n to_o they_o consideration_n be_v have_v of_o her_o necessity_n as_o we_o be_v altogether_o desirous_a that_o her_o grace_n necessity_n be_v consider_v so_o our_o duty_n crave_v that_o we_o shall_v notify_v to_o her_o majesty_n the_o true_a order_n that_o shall_v be_v observe_v to_o she_o in_o this_o behalf_n which_o be_v the_o tithe_n be_v proper_o to_o be_v repute_v the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o which_o before_o all_o thing_n they_o that_o travel_v in_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o poor_a indigent_a member_n of_o christ_n body_n shall_v be_v sustain_v the_o church_n repair_v and_o the_o youth_n broughtup_a in_o good_a letter_n which_o thing_n be_v do_v than_o other_o reasonable_a necessity_n may_v be_v support_v as_o her_o majesty_n &_o godly_a counsel_n can_v think_v expedient_a and_o we_o can_v not_o but_o thank_v her_o majesty_n most_o reverent_o for_o her_o liberal_a offer_n of_o her_o assignation_n to_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o minister_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v so_o general_o conceive_v that_o without_o more_o special_a condescend_v upon_o the_o particular_n no_o execution_n can_v follow_v and_o therefore_o we_o most_o humble_o crave_v of_o her_o majesty_n that_o these_o article_n may_v be_v reform_v ....._o beseech_v god_n that_o as_o they_o
two_o desire_n to_o be_v marry_v because_o they_o have_v attestation_n of_o two_o insuspect_v witness_n which_o testify_v that_o they_o hear_v the_o first_o man_n captain_n declare_v that_o he_o be_v slay_v in_o denmark_n on_o such_o a_o day_n of_o aprile_a last_o whither_o may_v these_o party_n be_v marry_v in_o respect_n they_o be_v guilty_a of_o adultery_n and_o so_o have_v sin_v before_o they_o know_v of_o the_o man_n death_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v marry_v ii_o a._n man_n be_v forewarn_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o marry_v his_o uncl_n wife_n be_v marry_v in_o the_o chapell-royall_a what_o order_n shall_v now_o be_v take_v with_o they_o their_o name_n shall_v be_v delate_a unto_o the_o migistrate_n that_o they_o may_v be_v punish_v as_o incestuous_a iii_o several_a person_n be_v divorce_v for_o adultery_n and_o the_o offend_a party_n seek_v marriage_n ans_fw-fr all_o minister_n shall_v be_v admonish_v that_o they_o marry_v none_o such_o under_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n 5._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o every_o superintendent_n shall_v cause_n summon_v all_o bishop_n abbot_n or_o whatsoever_o benefi●●d_a person_n be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o receive_v tithe_n and_o feed_v not_o a_o flock_n as_o their_o charge_n and_o where_o no_o superintendent_n be_v that_o the_o near_a superintendent_n shall_v send_v his_o letter_n to_o the_o minister_n next_o adjacent_a to_o summon_v such_o person_n to_o compear_v at_o the_o next_o general_a assembly_n to_o hear_v and_o know_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o case_n by_o the_o first_o particular_a of_o this_o assembly_n and_o the_o supplication_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o queen_n will_v yield_v somewhat_o to_o protestant_n and_o papist_n for_o her_o own_o end_n and_o the_o history_n of_o reformat_fw-la show_v that_o the_o arch_n b._n go_v to_o edinburg_n in_o january_n follow_v have_v the_o company_n of_o 100_o horseman_n or_o more_o intend_v to_o take_v possession_n according_a to_o his_o late_a gift_n but_o when_o three_o or_o four_o of_o the_o counsel_n go_v to_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o if_o he_o attempt_v to_o do_v it_o trouble_n may_v arise_v he_o be_v persuade_v to_o desist_v next_o from_o that_o letter_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n it_o appear_v what_o stir_n be_v there_o at_o that_o time_n as_o also_o the_o same_o year_n 5._o call_v jul._n beza_n write_v his_o eight_o epistle_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n rite_n against_o the_o reinduce_n of_o popish_a &_o abolish_v rite_n it_o be_v long_o but_o i_o shall_v only_o touch_v some_o passage_n of_o it_o i_o think_v say_v he_o that_o man_n shall_v not_o desert_v their_o church_n for_o such_o vesture_n but_o first_o i_o do_v judge_n that_o many_o thing_n in_o themselves_o indifferent_a be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o superstition_n or_o certain_o among_o these_o thing_n that_o tend_v to_o superstition_n because_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o worship_n which_o can_v not_o be_v eschew_v next_o it_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v suffer_v for_o the_o infirm_a off_o not_o a_o these_o rite_n have_v be_v leave_v off_o which_o when_o they_o be_v once_o remove_v shall_v not_o be_v restore_v at_o all_o because_o thus_o be_v not_o to_o trke_v away_o weakness_n but_o rather_o to_o increase_v it_o when_o it_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n take_v away_o and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o recall_v it_o when_o it_o be_v away_o and_o therefore_o i_o marvel_v not_o that_o some_o be_v more_o nice_a to_o restore_v thing_n than_o they_o be_v before_o these_o be_v remove_v and_o further_o it_o be_v a_o vainthing_n to_o pretend_v infirmity_n in_o that_o kingdom_n where_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v preach_v and_o receive_v so_o many_o year_n and_o confirm_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o excellent_a martyr_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n do_v just_o rebuke_v the_o galatian_n that_o when_o they_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n they_o will_v return_v to_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o tather_n may_v that_o be_v say_v of_o you_o english_v if_o when_o you_o have_v begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n you_o will_v fall_v back_o not_o as_o they_o unto_o flesh_n that_o be_v the_o rite_n of_o moses_n whereof_o god_n be_v the_o author_n but_o unto_o nugas_fw-la &_o quisquilias_fw-la the_o trifle_n of_o humane_a tradition_n which_o god_n forbid_v and_o this_o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o if_o these_o do_v sin_n which_o choose_v to_o leave_v their_o church_n rather_o than_o suffer_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v thrust_v upon_o they_o against_o their_o conscience_n these_o be_v far_o more_o guilty_a before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n who_o will_v have_v flock_n deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o horrible_a dissipation_n lay_v in_o the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n rather_o than_o see_v minister_n otherwise_o blameless_a clothe_v in_o this_o habit_n rather_o than_o that_o and_o hungry_a sheep_n shall_v have_v no_o food_n if_o they_o will_v not_o take_v it_o with_o geniculation_n or_o bow_v of_o knee_n beza_n speak_v there_o as_o also_o in_o his_o twelth_n epistle_n more_o large_o and_o of_o other_o particulares_fw-la but_o all_o such_o writing_n be_v in_o vain_a for_o some_o bishop_n continue_v in_o their_o wilfulness_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o epistle_n of_o zanchius_n write_v from_o heidlberg_n septemb_n 10_o 1571._o at_o the_o order_n of_o that_o religious_a prince_n palatine_n as_o he_o write_v unto_o queen_n elisabeth_n where_o he_o say_v to_o bring_v back_o these_o rot_a rag_n and_o other_o rubbish_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n at_o this_o time_n into_o the_o church_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o give_v a_o fair_a occasion_n unto_o the_o papist_n to_o harden_v themselves_o and_o their_o follower_n in_o their_o superstition_n and_o true_o as_o it_o be_v to_o push_v they_o thereunto_o let_v we_o then_o hearken_v what_o the_o prophet_n say_v unto_o josaphat_n aid_v a_o chab_n there_fw-mi thou_o help_v the_o wicked_a and_o love_v they_o which_o hate_v the_o lord_n therefore_o wrath_n from_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v upon_o thou_o and_o what_o other_o be_v this_o but_o to_o call_v back_o the_o weak_a from_o the_o study_n of_o pure_a religion_n and_o privy_o bid_v they_o return_v into_o egypt_n for_o infirm_a person_n be_v easy_o bring_v back_o into_o impiety_n see_v natural_o we_o be_v incline_v unto_o superstition_n etc._n etc._n v._o before_o i_o go_v before_o ward_n let_v we_o mark_v the_o special_a providence_n of_o god_n in_o scotland_n the_o admirable_a providence_n of_o god_n see_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o scotland_n reform_v the_o church_n of_o scotland_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o that_o in_o two_o particulares_fw-la i._o the_o minister_n be_v wrestle_v in_o zeal_n of_o the_o reformation_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n wrestle_v i_o say_v with_o poverty_n and_o against_o worldly_a power_n yet_o not_o by_o violence_n but_o by_o clea●ing_v fast_o to_o god_n word_n by_o supplication_n both_o unto_o god_n and_o to_o the_o adverse_a power_n for_o except_v john_n erskin_n who_o be_v a_o ancient_a baron_n all_o or_o most_o part_n of_o these_o minister_n be_v of_o no_o patrimony_n john_n knox_n have_v wait_v on_o george_n wishart_o the_o martyr_n john_n row_n be_v a_o friar_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v send_v an._n 1559._o as_o nuntio_n into_o scotland_n and_o when_o he_o see_v the_o difference_n in_o the_o country_n in_o steed_n of_o agent_v the_o pope_n business_n he_o turn_v preacher_n john_n craig_n be_v a_o dominican_n at_o bononia_n where_o find_v the_o institution_n of_o john_n caluin_n he_o embrace_v the_o truth_n in_o they_o and_o one_o day_n confer_v with_o a_o old_a man_n in_o the_o monastery_n he_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n but_o withal_o be_v warn_v that_o he_o make_v not_o his_o mind_n know_v because_o the_o time_n be_v perilous_a nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o dissemble_v and_o be_v as_o a_o heretic_n send_v to_o rome_n and_o after_o examination_n be_v imprison_v and_o lay_v there_o in_o great_a misery_n the_o space_n of_o nine_o month_n then_o give_v a_o clear_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n before_o the_o inquisitor_n he_o be_v condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v august_n 19_o the_o same_o night_n pope_n paul_n iv_o die_v and_o in_o a_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n all_o the_o prison_n be_v break_v up_o and_o the_o prisoner_n set_v free_a among_o other_o this_o man_n escape_v and_o at_o last_o come_v home_o john_n willock_n and_o christopher_n goodman_n have_v be_v preacher_n in_o england_n and_o in_o queen_n mary_n persecution_n flee_v into_o scotland_n john_n dury_n have_v be_v a_o monk_n in_o dumfernlin_n and_o so_o many_o other_o be_v monk_n in_o several_a part_n of_o the_o nation_n so_o they_o have_v no_o earthly_a riches_n nor_o authority_n and_o yet_o it_o please_v god_n by_o such_o
weak_a instrument_n to_o make_v his_o glory_n so_o sensible_o appear_v in_o the_o land_n that_o i_o may_v bold_o say_v mercy_n and_o truth_n righteousness_n and_o peace_n have_v never_o since_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n a_o more_o glorious_a meeting_n and_o amiable_a embrace_v on_o earth_n even_o so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n just_o obtain_v a_o name_n among_o the_o chief_a church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n a_o people_n sit_v in_o darkness_n have_v see_v a_o great_a light_n and_o unto_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o the_o region_n of_o death_n light_n do_v spring_v up_o as_o the_o darkness_n evanish_v at_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n so_o god_n make_v all_o adverse_a power_n give_v way_n unto_o these_o weak_a instrument_n by_o degree_n as_o follow_v more_o clear_o to_o what_o nation_n under_o heaven_n since_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v shine_v upon_o the_o most_o part_n of_o europe_n have_v the_o lord_n communicate_v the_o gospel_n for_o so_o large_a a_o time_n with_o such_o purity_n prosperity_n power_n liberty_n and_o peace_n the_o hot_a persecution_n have_v not_o great_a purity_n the_o most_o haltion_n time_n have_v not_o more_o prosperity_n and_o peace_n the_o best_a reform_a church_n in_o other_o place_n scarce_o parallel_v their_o liberty_n and_o unity_n and_o all_o these_o with_o such_o continuance_n that_o not_o only_o have_v he_o make_v the_o truth_n to_o stay_v there_o as_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o stay_v in_o the_o day_n of_o josua_n but_o when_o the_o cloud_n of_o iniquity_n do_v threaten_v a_o go_v down_o in_o his_o mercy_n he_o have_v bring_v back_o the_o glorious_a sun_n by_o in_o any_o degree_n christ_n not_o have_v only_o be_v one_o and_o his_o name_n make_v know_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o prophetical_a office_n for_o information_n of_o his_o priesthood_n for_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n and_o for_o intercession_n but_o also_o have_v display_v his_o banner_n and_o have_v show_v himself_o few_o can_v say_v the_o like_a a_o sovereign_a king_n in_o the_o land_n to_o govern_v with_o his_o own_o sceptre_n of_o the_o word_n to_o cut_v off_o with_o the_o civil_a sword_n all_o monument_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superfluity_n of_o vain_a rite_n and_o to_o restore_v all_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o worship_n in_o doctrine_n sacrament_n and_o discipline_n to_o the_o holy_a simplicity_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o first_o pattern_n show_v in_o the_o mount_n from_o which_o by_o that_o wisdom_n of_o man_n which_o ever_o be_v foolishness_n with_o god_n they_o be_v fearful_o and_o shameful_o swerve_v ii_o another_o particular_a be_v some_o noble_a man_n namely_o lord_n james_n steward_n and_o other_o be_v very_o zealous_a for_o the_o reformation_n at_o the_o first_o but_o when_o they_o be_v accustom_v with_o the_o air_n of_o the_o court_n they_o cool_v be_v for_o toleration_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o relent_v for_o their_o preferment_n as_o he_o be_v make_v earl_n of_o morray_n and_o other_o become_v officer_n of_o state_n the_o minister_n admonish_v they_o and_o threaten_v they_o for_o their_o lukewarmness_n they_o despise_v admonition_n and_o will_v not_o use_v the_o preacher_n so_o familiar_o as_o before_o they_o be_v wont_a though_o none_o of_o they_o turn_v papist_n excep_v the_o earl_n of_o bothwell_n and_o they_o hear_v the_o preach_n when_o the_o queen_n intend_v to_o marry_v henry_n stuard_n soon_o to_o the_o earl_n of_o lennox_n and_o seek_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o parliament_n they_o oppose_v her_o marriage_n and_o therefore_o be_v all_o exile_v and_o flee_v into_o england_n thus_o god_n make_v the_o threaten_n true_o but_o in_o mercy_n to_o the_o land_n he_o wondrous_o bring_v they_o back_o when_o variance_n fall_v betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n the_o king_n recall_v the_o exile_a noble_a man_n of_o purpose_n to_o make_v himself_o the_o strong_a by_o they_o and_o when_o the_o king_n 1567._o 1567._o be_v murder_v on_o february_n 9_o by_o the_o earl_n of_o bothwel_n and_o the_o queen_n marry_v that_o earl_n these_o same_o noble_a man_n with_o other_o stand_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o young_a prince_n that_o he_o come_v not_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o who_o have_v kill_v his_o father_n they_o go_v to_o the_o field_n with_o army_n on_o both_o side_n and_o the_o queen_n army_n be_v the_o strong_a but_o they_o be_v strike_v with_o such_o fear_n that_o without_o stroke_n of_o sword_n the_o earl_n flee_v away_o into_o denmark_n and_o the_o queen_n go_v to_o the_o lord_n juny_fw-fr 11._o and_o renounce_v the_o crown_n in_o favour_n of_o she_o soon_o and_o do_v choose_v the_o earl_n of_o murray_n to_o be_v regent_n of_o the_o cro●n_n q._n marry_o renounce_v the_o cro●n_n kingdom_n endure_v her_o sone_n minority_n and_o then_o the_o religion_n be_v establish_v as_o follow_v so_o it_o please_v god_n to_o change_v thing_n beyond_o the_o expectation_n of_o man_n vi_o soon_o after_o the_o queen_n marriage_n a_o proclamation_n be_v make_v wherein_o the_o queen_n declare_v that_o she_o will_v confirm_v all_o that_o she_o have_v promise_v at_o her_o arrival_n concern_v the_o reform_a religion_n this_o be_v to_o stop_v the_o people_n mouth_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o the_o people_n universal_o be_v against_o bothwell_n for_o some_o declare_v open_o against_o he_o some_o be_v neuter_n and_o a_o few_o of_o the_o nobility_n do_v join_v unto_o he_o especial_o the_o bishop_n of_o santandrews_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o huntly_n who_o have_v be_v late_o restore_v by_o the_o queen_n within_o few_o day_n after_o the_o queen_n come_v unto_o the_o lord_n she_o will_v have_v go_v from_o they_o but_o they_o fear_v what_o she_o may_v attempt_v convoy_n she_o into_o the_o castle_n of_o lochlevin_n then_o the_o earl_n of_o glencarn_n with_o his_o domestics_n go_v to_o the_o chappell-royall_a and_o break_v down_o the_o altar_n &_o image_n this_o fact_n do_v content_v the_o zealous_a protestant_n but_o do_v offend_v the_o popish_a party_n the_o histor_n of_o reformat_fw-la lib._n 5._o on_o juny_n 25._o the_o nationall_n assembly_n conveene_n at_o edinburgh_n george_n buchanan_n then_o assembly_n the_o xiii_o assembly_n principal_a of_o s._n leonard_n college_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o the_o superintendent_n of_o anguise_n and_o bergany_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o secret_a counsel_n to_o request_v their_o l._n l._n to_o conveen_n with_o the_o assembly_n and_o give_v their_o assistance_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v good_a for_o establish_v true_a religion_n and_o support_v the_o ministry_n 2._o it_o be_v think_v good_a by_o all_o that_o be_v convene_v that_o this_o assembly_n shall_v conveen_v july_n 20._o next_o to_o come_v for_o set_v forward_o such_o thing_n as_o shall_v then_o be_v propound_v and_o for_o that_o purpose_n ordain_v to_o write_v missive_n to_o all_o and_o sundry_a earl_n lord_n and_o baron_n require_v they_o to_o conveen_n at_o that_o day_n and_o to_o this_o effect_n appoint_v commissioner_n to_o deliver_v the_o missive_n and_o to_o require_v answer_n according_a to_o their_o commission●_n the_o tenor_n of_o the_o commission_n give_v to_o every_o one_o follow_v for_o so_o much_o as_o satan_n this_o long_a time_n in_o his_o member_n have_v so_o rage_v and_o perturb_v the_o good_a success_n &_o proceed_n of_o christ_n religion_n within_o this_o realm_n by_o crafty_a mean_n &_o subtle_a conspiracy_n that_o the_o same_o from_o time_n to_o time_n do_v decay_v and_o in_o hazard_n to_o be_v altogether_o subvert_v unles●_n god_n of_o his_o mercy_n find_v hasty_a remedy_n and_o that_o main_o through_o extreme_a poverty_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o shall_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o life_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o be_v compel_v thereby_o some_o to_o leave_v that_o vocation_n alluter_o some_o other_o so_o abstract_v that_o they_o can_v not_o insist_v so_o diligent_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o word_n as_o they_o will_v therefore_o the_o church_n present_o convene_v in_o this_o general_a assembly_n have_v think_v it_o most_o necessary_a by_o these_o present_n to_o request_n &_o admonish_v most_o brotherly_a all_o such_o person_n as_o do_v true_o profess_v the_o lord_n jesus_n within_o this_o realm_n of_o whatsoever_o estate_n or_o degree_n either_o of_o the_o nobility_n baron_n and_o gentle_a man_n and_o all_o other_o true_a professor_n to_o conveen_v in_o edinburgh_n july_n 21._o next_o in_o their_o personal_a presence_n to_o assist_v with_o their_o counsel_n &_o power_n for_o order_n to_o be_v take_v alswell_o towards_o the_o establish_n of_o christ_n religion_n universal_o throughout_o the_o realm_n and_o abolish_n the_o contrary_n which_o be_v papistry_n as_o the_o sustentation_n of_o the_o minister_n not_o only_o for_o the_o present_a time_n and_o instant_a necessity_n but_o also_o for_o a_o perfect_a order_n to_o be_v take_v and_o
charge_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o remain_v in_o ward_n within_o edinburg_n until_o the_o pass_v away_o of_o the_o first_o ship_n wherein_o they_o shall_v be_v enter_v and_o send_v away_o and_o that_o it_o be_v denounce_v unto_o they_o that_o if_o they_o return_v at_o any_o time_n hereafter_o without_o your_o special_a licence_n the_o law_n shall_v be_v execut_v against_o they_o to_o death_n without_o any_o more_o process_n 2._o that_o the_o laird_n of_o fentry_n glenbervy_n young_a and_o other_o excommunicate_v papist_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v up_o in_o writ_n may_v also_o be_v call_v before_o your_o majesty_n &_o counsel_n and_o such_o thing_n be_v lay_v unto_o their_o charge_n as_o they_o be_v culpable_a of_o according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o the_o penalty_n thereof_o may_v be_v execute_v upon_o they_o and_o other_o apostate_n from_o the_o true_a religion_n which_o once_o they_o have_v embrace_v be_v call_v also_o and_o punish_v 3._o that_o summons_n be_v present_o direct_v against_o all_o receipter_n of_o papist_n jesuit_n seminarie-priest_n and_o all_o traffiquer_n against_o true_a religion_n and_o likewise_o to_o summon_v witness_n by_o who_o deposition_n they_o may_v be_v convict_v of_o the_o foresay_a crime_n and_o special_o that_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o estate_n and_o be_v culpable_a of_o apostasy_n or_o papistry_n shall_v no_o way_n be_v suffer_v but_o call_v and_o convict_v thereof_o and_o if_o they_o be_v apprehend_v for_o other_o crime_n shall_v on_o no_o way_n be_v pardon_v until_o they_o have_v satiffy_v both_o your_o majesty_n and_o estate_n and_o also_o the_o church_n and_o general_o that_o all_o noble_a man_n whatsoever_o without_o exception_n know_v to_o be_v entertainer_n of_o papist_n or_o enterprise_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v put_v present_o in_o ward_n or_o exile_v concern_v the_o plant_n of_o church_n this_o be_v our_o advice_n that_o commissioner_n be_v direct_v from_o your_o majesty_n and_o this_o general_n assembly_n into_o the_o north_n and_o south_n part_n of_o the_o country_n to_o visit_v and_o plant_v minister_n where_o need_n require_v for_o repress_v papistry_n and_o have_v commission_n alswell_o from_o your_o majesty_n as_o from_o the_o church_n to_o call_v before_o they_o all_o that_o be_v suspect_v of_o pervert_v true_a religion_n or_o revolt_n from_o it_o and_o to_o do_v all_o other_o thing_n for_o reformation_n of_o these_o part_n and_o because_o this_o work_n can_v not_o proceed_v unless_o provision_n be_v make_v alswell_o to_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o church_n as_o minister_n to_o be_v plant_v in_o necessary_a place_n that_o certain_a person_n be_v depute_v from_o the_o counsel_n and_o some_o of_o the_o ministry_n to_o conveen_v with_o all_o expedition_n to_o sight_n the_o roll_n of_o the_o three_o that_o it_o may_v be_v consider_v what_o may_v be_v spare_v unto_o that_o effect_n and_o where_o these_o three_o have_v be_v abuse_v to_o see_v how_o they_o may_v be_v reform_v and_o that_o the_o act_n make_v for_o discharge_v pension_n out_o of_o the_o three_o and_o superplus_n and_o proclamation_n that_o have_v pass_v thereupon_o may_v take_v full_a effect_n likewise_o give_v power_n unto_o these_o commissioner_n to_o reform_v college_n &_o school_n and_o where_o the_o rent_n thereof_o have_v be_v abuse_v to_o put_v convenient_a remedy_n thereunto_o and_o where_o it_o can_v not_o serve_v to_o see_v how_o it_o may_v be_v help_v and_o that_o qualify_a man_n be_v place_v in_o the_o room_n of_o id●e_a belly_n and_o to_o depose_v from_o the_o ministry_n and_o from_o their_o benefice_n all_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v unworthy_a or_o scandalous_a in_o life_n or_o doctrine_n alswell_o bishop_n as_o other_o last_o that_o it_o will_v please_v your_o majesty_n take_v some_o solid_a order_n that_o the_o law_n make_v for_o punish_v vice_n and_o commissioner_n appoint_v thereunto_o may_v take_v some_o good_a effect_n and_o that_o order_n be_v take_v with_o the_o poor_a that_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o the_o country_n without_o law_n or_o religion_n with_o this_o supplication_n be_v also_o send_v a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o every_o province_n ii_o in_o sess_n 5._o rob._n rollok_n and._n melvim_n to._n buchanan_n and_o pa._n sharp_n be_v order_v to_o visit_v the_o reply_n of_o peter_n blackburn_n unto_o the_o book_n of_o the_o jesuire_n ja._n gordon_n in_o sess_n 14._o they_o report_v that_o on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o jesuir_n they_o have_v find_v much_o diligence_n and_o sophistry_n and_o they_o praise_v god_n for_o the_o reply_n where_o in_o they_o have_v find_v solid_a judgement_n and_o great_a light_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o overthrow_v of_o the_o enemy_n in_o sess_n 8._o the_o assembly_n directe_v the_o minister_n of_o disert_fw-la to_o charge_n patrick_n adamson_n to_o compear_v personal_o and_o present_v his_o own_o petition_n in_o sess_n 16._o patrick_n adamson_n bishop_n be_v convict_v of_o transgress_v the_o act_n of_o conference_n and_o therefore_o deprive_v of_o his_o office_n of_o commission_n and_o thomas_n buchanan_n be_v place_v in_o his_o room_n until_o the_o next_o assembly_n iv_o the_o assembly_n take_v into_o consideration_n the_o process_n lead_v against_o robert_n mongomery_n and_o the_o supplication_n given-in_a by_o he_o and_o they_o declare_v that_o he_o may_v be_v admit_v pastor_n of_o a_o flock_n where_o he_o have_v not_o be_v scandalous_a provide_v that_o he_o be_v find_v qualify_v in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n v._o in_o sess_n 9_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n crave_v that_o the_o assembly_n will_v weigh_v whither_o james_n gibson_n have_v not_o offend_v the_o king_n not_o only_o in_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v in_o sermon_n these_o word_n follow_v that_o he_o ween_v that_o james_n stuart_n the_o lady_n jesabell_n and_o william_n stuart_n have_v be_v persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n but_o now_o he_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o king_n himself_o have_v be_v the_o persecuter_n and_o as_o jeroboam_n for_o erect_v idolatry_n and_o permit_v thereof_o be_v the_o last_o of_o his_o posterity_n so_o he_o fear_v if_o he_o continue_v he_o shall_v conclude_v his_o race_n but_o also_o in_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v before_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o conference_n that_o he_o have_v offend_v his_o majesty_n he_o promise_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n and_o have_v fail_v and_o break_a promise_n james_n gibson_n be_v call_v and_o compeare_v not_o then_o the_o chancellor_n crave_v that_o the_o moderator_n put_v it_o to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o brethren_n whither_o these_o word_n be_v offensive_a none_o offer_v any_o reason_n in_o the_o contaary_a it_o be_v propound_v eisdem_fw-la terminis_fw-la and_o be_v vote_v affirmatiuè_n these_o word_n be_v offensive_a in_o sess_n 11._o because_o before_o noon_n james_n gibson_n be_v present_a be_v summon_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o moderator_n to_o be_v present_a after_o noon_n to_o hear_v his_o cause_n reason_v and_o as_o it_o be_v testify_v by_o sundry_a brethren_n then_o sit_v by_o he_o that_o they_o hear_v he_o promise_n to_o compear_v and_o nevertheless_o compeare_v not_o the_o assembly_n declare_v he_o contumacious_a for_o not_o compear_v nor_o send_v any_o reasonable_a excuse_n of_o his_o absence_n in_o sess_n 13._o the_o assembly_n judge_v james_n gibson_n to_o be_v suspend_v from_o the_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n during_o the_o will_n of_o the_o church_n vi_o these_o who_o be_v wont_a to_o compear_v before_o the_o synod_n to_o declare_v their_o repentance_n of_o adultery_n homicide_n or_o such_o crime_n shall_v hereafter_o compeare_v before_o the_o presbytery_n of_o their_o own_o bound_n for_o ●hat_n end_n vii_o in_o sess_n 1●_n all_o minister_n shall_v with_o all_o diligence_n travel_v within_o their_o parish_n with_o the_o noble_a man_n &_o gentle_a man_n to_o subscribe_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o report_v their_o diligence_n unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n viii_o in_o sess_n 16._o a_o general_a fast_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v keep_v the_o first_o two_o sunday_n of_o july_n for_o these_o cause_n 1._o the_o universal_a conspiracy_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o put_v in_o execution_n the_o bloody_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 2._o the_o flock_v of_o jesuit_n &_o papist_n 3._o the_o defection_n of_o a_o multitude_n from_o the_o truth_n 4._o the_o conspiracy_n intend_v against_o the_o same_o by_o great_a man_n of_o the_o land_n maintainer_n of_o jesuit_n and_o papist_n 5._o the_o coldness_n of_o all_o sort_n 6._o the_o wrack_n of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n 7._o the_o abondance_n of_o bloodshed_n adultery_n incest_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o iniquity_n whereof_o the_o particular_a church_n have_v their_o experience_n for_o clear_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o assembly_n we_o may_v learn_v 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o meeting_n from_z b_o
with_o advice_n of_o his_o counsel_n certain_a baron_n and_o gentle_a man_n be_v direct_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o south_n part_n of_o this_o realm_n have_v promit_v and_o by_o these_o present_n promit_v in_o the_o word_n of_o a_o prince_n that_o the_o same_o baron_n shall_v not_o be_v licence_v to_o return_v unto_o the_o say_a north_n part_n nor_o shall_v any_o favour_n or_o pardon_v be_v grant_v unto_o the_o say_a earl_n jesuit_n nor_o other_o above_o specify_v any_o order_n be_v take_v nor_o dispense_v with_o without_o the_o special_a knowledge_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o lieutenent_n or_o commissioner_n for_o the_o time_n and_o six_o of_o the_o principal_a baron_n at_o least_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o say_a north_n part_n subscriber_n of_o this_o present_a band_n and_o this_o to_o do_v we_o the_o say_v noble_a man_n baron_n and_o other_o foresaid_n have_v swear_v and_o swear_v by_o the_o great_a god_n our_o creator_n jesus_n christ_n his_o soon_o our_o redeener_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n our_o sanctifier_n witness_n of_o the_o verity_n here_o agree_v upon_o add_v revenger_n of_o the_o breach_n thereof_o and_o further_o we_o oblige_v we_o thereunto_o under_o the_o pain_n of_o perjury_n infamy_n and_o loss_n of_o credit_n of_o honour_n &_o estimation_n in_o time_n come_v beside_o the_o law_n to_o be_v execute_v against_o we_o in_o witness_v whereof_o we_o have_v subscribe_v these_o present_n with_o our_o hand_n as_o follow_v even_o as_o his_o ma._n in_o token_n of_o allowance_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o premise_n have_v subscribe_v the_o same_o act_n at_o aberdien_n the_o day_n of_o march_n 1592._o sic_fw-la subscribitur_fw-la ja._n r._n lennox_n athol_n mar_n martial_n james_n l._n lindsay_n john_n l._n innerness_n john_n mr_n of_o forbes_n etc._n etc._n with_o this_o be_v write_v the_o proclamation_n make_v at_o halirudhouse_n jan._n 5_o 1592._o 1593._o according_a to_o the_o reckon_n now_o forsomuch_o as_o albeit_o the_o dangerous_a effect_n of_o the_o cover_a and_o busy_a travel_n of_o jesuit_n seminary-priest_n bear_v subject_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o other_o stranger_n in_o these_o late_a year_n have_v be_v fear_v and_o espy_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n by_o sundry_a lovable_a law_n act_n &_o proclamation_n both_o their_o own_o remain_v and_o the_o receive_n of_o they_o have_v be_v prohibit_v under_o diverse_a high_a pain_n yet_o their_o colour_a simplicity_n have_v so_o far_o prevail_v as_o they_o have_v not_o only_o purchase_v unto_o themselves_o favour_n &_o credit_n to_o be_v keep_v huird_v &_o entertain_v in_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o realm_n after_o many_o promise_n make_v that_o they_o shall_v depart_v forth_o of_o the_o same_o but_o also_o have_v take_v occasion_n and_o leisure_n to_o persuade_v sundry_a of_o his_o hieness_n subject_n to_o apostasy_n from_o that_o religion_n wherein_o they_o be_v once_o instruct_v &_o ground_v and_o have_v confirm_v in_o their_o error_n and_o at_o last_o have_v seduce_v they_o to_o cast_v off_o their_o due_a obedience_n which_o they_o owe_v unto_o his_o majesty_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o treasonous_a conspiracy_n for_o inbringing_a of_o stranger_n spainards_n into_o this_o realm_n the_o next_o spring_n or_o soon_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o his_o highness_n and_o all_o profess_v the_o true_a religion_n with_o he_o and_o to_o the_o ruin_n and_o conquest_n of_o this_o ancient_a kingdom_n and_o liberty_n which_o this_o nation_n have_v enjoy_v so_o many_o age_n that_o it_o may_v be_v subject_a hereafter_o to_o the_o slavery_n &_o tyranny_n of_o that_o proud_a nation_n which_o have_v make_v so_o unlawful_a &_o cruel_a conquest_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n al●well_n upon_o the_o christian_n as_o infidel_n wheresoever_o the_o aid_n of_o spain_n have_v be_v seek_v regard_v in_o end_n no_o better_o the_o inbringer_n than_o they_o against_o who_o they_o be_v bring_v be_v once_o victor_n &_o commander_n as_o easy_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o special_a exampl_n which_o the_o malicious_a a●d_n minaturall_a subject_n of_o this_o land_n will_v repute_v but_o as_o general_a and_o improbable_a discourse_n publish_v in_o hatred_n of_o that_o nation_n to_o which_o they_o have_v already_o sell_v themselves_o slave_n and_o be_v their_o friend_n &_o factor_n in_o this_o land_n as_o they_o speak_v and_o write_v be_v it_o not_o thath_fw-mi it_o please_v the_o almighty_a god_n to_o make_v the_o proof_n hereof_o certain_a and_o without_o all_o doubt_n by_o detect_v of_o the_o simple_a truth_n of_o the_o intention_n &_o final_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o crafty_a practice_n of_o these_o pernitions_a traffic_v papist_n jesuit_n and_o seminary-priest_n against_o god_n true_a religion_n his_o ma_n and_o liberty_n of_o this_o country_n namely_o mr_n james_n gordon_n father-brother_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o huntly_n ro._n abercromy_n father-brother_n to_o the_o laird_n of_o murtle_n who_o letter_n directions_z advice_n yea_o and_o the_o messenger_n or_o carrier_n of_o their_o credit_n and_o certain_a other_o chieff_a instrument_n and_o furtherer_n of_o their_o trade_n god_n have_v casten_z into_o his_o highness_n hand_n when_o the_o ship_n appoint_v for_o their_o transport_v be_v in_o full_a readiness_n whereby_o his_o majesty_n be_v now_o not_o only_o sufficient_o forewarn_v of_o the_o imminent_a danger_n to_o the_o true_a religion_n his_o own_o estate_n &_o person_n his_o realm_n and_o faithful_a subject_n but_o resolve_v with_o god_n help_n by_o who_o providence_n he_o have_v be_v so_o wonderful_o deliver_v from_o many_o former_a peril_n to_o try_v the_o full_a circumstance_n of_o this_o so_o high_a a_o conspiracy_n and_o detestable_a treason_n to_o withstand_v it_o and_o punish_v it_o and_o on_o all_o guilty_a thereof_o in_o example_n to_o all_o posterity_n that_o none_o of_o his_o subject_n heretofore_o abuse_v and_o deceive_v by_o the_o crafty_a illusion_n of_o these_o pernicious_a and_o busy_a workman_n shall_v remain_v any_o long_a doubtful_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o majesty_n mind_n &_o intention_n ordain_v letter_n to_o be_v direct_v to_o officer_n of_o arm_n shirref_n in_o that_o part_n to_o make_v publication_n of_o the_o premise_n by_o open_a proclamation_n at_o the_o market-cross_n of_o the_o head_n burgh_v of_o this_o realm_n and_o other_o place_n needful_a for_o warn_v they_o of_o the_o many_o danger_n if_o they_o shall_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v any_o long_o in_o error_n by_o these_o deceive_a spirit_n to_o the_o peril_n of_o their_o soul_n land_n and_o good_n and_o therefore_o to_o abstain_v from_o further_a heark_v to_o their_o treasonous_a persuasion_n and_o from_o all_o entertain_v receive_v supply_n intercommon_v or_o have_v intelligence_n with_o they_o direct_o or_o indirect_o under_o whatsoever_o pretext_n or_o colour_n under_o pain_n of_o treason_n command_v also_o all_o &_o sundry_a his_o ma_n be_v faithful_a &_o obedient_a subject_n that_o love_n &_o fear_n god_n wish_v the_o stand_n &_o well_o fare_v of_o his_o majesty_n their_o sovereign_n lord_n &_o king_n profess_v with_o he_o the_o true_a and_o christian_a religion_n and_o desire_v that_o their_o own_o wife_n chidren_n and_o posterity_n shall_v now_o and_o hereafter_o enjoy_v the_o commodity_n of_o this_o their_o native_a country_n unconquest_n and_o make_v slave_n in_o soul_n &_o body_n to_o merciless_a stranger_n that_o they_o implore_v the_o mercy_n &_o protection_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n for_o their_o defence_n &_o save_v guard_n and_o put_v themselves_o in_o arm_n by_o all_o good_a mean_n they_o can_v remain_v in_o full_a readiness_n to_o pursue_v or_o defend_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v certify_v by_o his_o majesty_n or_o other_o way_n find_v the_o occasion_n urgent_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n diligent_o espy_v and_o get_v intelligence_n of_o the_o treasonable_a course_n and_o proceed_n of_o the_o say_a jesuit_n priest_n their_o favourer_n mantainer_n and_o receipter_n and_o make_v advertisement_n to_o his_o counsel_n thereof_o with_o all_o speed_n &_o celerity_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v unto_o god_n and_o his_o majesty_n thereupon_o sic_fw-la subscribitur_fw-la james_n r._n these_o be_v read_v the_o assembly_n give_v their_o power_n &_o commission_n unto_o pa._n galloway_n pe._n black_a bourn_n &_o pa._n simson_n to_o give_v information_n unto_o his_o majesty_n reside_v then_o at_o sterlin_n of_o the_o evident_a dander_n imminent_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n within_o this_o realm_n according_a to_o the_o instruction_n give_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o present_v unto_o his_o majesty_n their_o humble_a article_n &_o petition_n for_o remove_v the_o say_a danger_n and_o to_o insist_v with_o all_o humility_n and_o due_a reverence_n for_o hit_v ma_fw-fr s_o good_a answer_n thereunto_o and_o to_o report_v with_o all_o diligence_n his_o ma_n be_v answer_v before_o the_o assembly_n dissolve_v the_o tenor_n of_o the_o article_n follow_v the_o same_o danger_n which_o before_o by_o the_o crafty_a &_o pernicious_a
nevertheless_o not_o only_o do_v the_o ass_n approve_v it_o but_o the_o k._n also_o in_o his_o five_o article_n call_v they_o the_o excommunicate_a lord_n and_o albeit_o the_o l._n hume_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n excommunicate_v yet_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o ass_n he_o name_v not_o that_o exception_n whereupon_o he_o may_v have_v have_v such_o benefit_n as_o the_o earl_n of_o anguse_n have_v find_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o year_n 1590._o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o object_v crime_n and_o yet_o the_o sentence_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v null_a because_o of_o informality_n but_o a_o enemy_n be_v ever_o object_v whither_o true_a or_o false_a what_o he_o have_v of_o the_o assembly_n slight_v the_o business_n of_o john_n ross_n and_o an._n hunter_n be_v clear_a by_o what_o be_v above_o in_o the_o parliament_n follow_v in_o juny_a the_o excommunicate_v lord_n be_v forfeit_v and_o law_n be_v make_v against_o all_o willing_a hearer_n of_o mass_n against_o all_o that_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o church_n after_o the_o parliament_n because_o both_o well_o have_v fail_v of_o his_o attempt_n by_o himself_o he_o join_v with_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o north_n whereupon_o follow_v more_o trouble_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o rebel_n be_v fain_o to_o leave_v the_o country_n before_o february_n xxxii_o the_o assembly_n convene_v at_o montros_n juny_n 24._o james_n assembly_n 1595._o the_o 57_o assembly_n nicolson_n be_v choose_v moderator_n i._o the_o assembly_n declare_v themselves_o judge_n of_o marriage_n what_o be_v lawful_a and_o what_o be_v unlawful_a in_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o spiritual_a part_n thereof_o in_o sess_n 9_o they_o declare_v two_o sort_n unlawful_a 1._o when_o a_o person_n marry_v another_o who_o he_o have_v before_o pollute_v by_o adultery_n 2._o if_o the_o innocent_a person_n be_v content_a to_o remain_v with_o the_o nocent_a and_o the_o guilty_a or_o adulterer_n will_v take_v another_o likewise_o marriage_n make_v by_o priest_n or_o by_o they_o who_o have_v serve_v in_o the_o ministry_n and_o be_v depose_v from_o the_o function_n or_o by_o a_o private_a person_n such_o marriage_n be_v unlawful_a ii_o all_o presbytery_n be_v ordain_v to_o proceed_v against_o papist_n within_o their_o bound_n and_o against_o all_o their_o receipter_n or_o entertainer_n under_o pain_n of_o deposition_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o who_o default_n the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v execute_v and_o the_o same_o discipline_n to_o be_v use_v against_o all_o that_o have_v intercommon_v intelligence_n or_o familiarity_n with_o excommunicate_n iii_o because_o many_o profess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v abstain_v for_o many_o year_n from_o participation_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n under_o pretence_n of_o ●eud_n thereby_o declare_v how_o little_o they_o esteem_v that_o great_a benefit_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n cut_v off_o themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o ordinance_n be_v give_v unto_o all_o presbytery_n to_o charge_v all_o such_o person_n within_o their_o bound_n to_o do_v as_o it_o become_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o any_o person_n through_o infirmity_n or_o weakness_n of_o conscience_n shall_v refuse_v the_o presbytery_n shall_v by_o information_n bring_v they_o into_o duty_n grant_v they_o some_o competent_a time_n to_o resolve_v themselves_o and_o if_o they_o continue_v obstinate_a to_o proceed_v against_o they_o to_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n iu._n sundry_a session_n be_v take_v up_o wi●h_o advise_v upon_o a_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o a_o constant_a plat_v for_o settle_v of_o minister_n stipend_n or_o assignation_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v change_v yearly_o v._o sir_n james_n chissholm_n in_o humility_n confess_v his_o offence_n namely_o his_o apostasy_n from_o the_o religion_n for_o which_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v he_o crave_v mercy_n from_o god_n he_o declare_v that_o now_o he_o renounce_v antichrist_n with_o all_o his_o error_n and_o resolve_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o he_o crave_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n again_o the_o assembly_n appoint_v some_o to_o deal_v with_o he_o by_o conference_n and_o other_o to_o draw_v up_o the_o form_n of_o his_o satisfaction_n in_o sess_n 9_o he_o be_v receive_v and_o the_o sentence_n of_o his_o absolution_n be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o moderator_n vi_o some_o article_n of_o inquisition_n concern_v the_o dilapidation_n of_o benefice_n be_v prescribe_v unto_o presbytery_n vii_o the_o king_n commissioner_n give_v the_o article_n follow_v to_o be_v read_v and_o answer_v 1._o his_o ma._n crave_v that_o a_o act_n be_v make_v ordain_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v practice_v any_o treasonable_a enterprise_n or_o conspiracy_n against_o his_o majesty_n s_o person_n or_o estate_n be_v find_v and_o declare_v culpable_a by_o the_o law_n shall_v also_o for_o that_o incur_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n that_o thereby_o a_o inseparable_a union_n may_v be_v betwixt_o the_o two_o sword_n 2._o that_o a_o order_n be_v take_v in_o excommunication_n special_o in_o three_o point_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o the_o appetite_n of_o two_o or_o three_o person_n but_o by_o a_o convenient_a number_n of_o the_o church_n grave_o assemble_v second_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o civil_a cause_n or_o small_a fault_n special_o for_o any_o minister_n particular_a interest_n lest_o it_o be_v think_v they_o imitate_v the_o pope_n curse_n and_o so_o incur_v the_o like_a contempt_n three_o the_o form_n of_o summary_n excommunication_n without_o any_o citation_n to_o be_v abolish_v 3._o because_o mr_n craig_n be_v wait_v in_o sickness_n what_o hour_n it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o call_v he_o and_o be_v altogether_o unable_a to_o serve_v any_o more_o and_o his_o maj._n intend_v to_o place_v j._n duncanson_n with_o the_o prince_n and_o so_o have_v no_o minister_n but_o pa._n galloway_n therefore_o crave_v a_o ordinance_n grant_v two_o minister_n who_o he_o shall_v choose_v the_o humble_a answer_n 1._o the_o assembly_n grant_v the_o first_o legitima_fw-la cognittone_n ecclesiastica_fw-la praeeunte_fw-la 2._o concern_v the_o first_o particular_a of_o the_o second_o the_o assembly_n agree_v and_o the_o other_o two_o import_v great_a weight_n and_o require_v deliberation_n the_o assembly_n think_v meet_v to_o conclude_v nothing_o therein_o until_o the_o next_o assemb_v when_o by_o god_n grace_n these_o shall_v be_v determine_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o ordain_v that_o none_o in_o the_o ministry_n proceed_v to_o excommunicate_v without_o citation_n nisi_fw-la periclitetur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la 3._o it_o be_v agree_v that_o his_o maj._n shall_v have_v his_o choice_n of_o godly_a and_o learned_a minister_n and_o to_o this_o effect_n ten_o minister_n or_o any_o six_o of_o they_o be_v direct_v to_o advise_v with_o his_o maj._n in_o his_o choice_n viii_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o exequitour_n of_o minister_n it_o be_v ordain_v if_o a_o minister_n die_v after_o september_n 29._o quia_fw-la fruges_fw-la sunt_fw-la separa●ae_fw-la à_fw-la solo_fw-la his_o exequitor_n shall_v have_v all_o that_o year_n stipend_n or_o rent_n and_o the_o half_a of_o the_o next_o ix_o because_o there_o be_v great_a cause_n of_o humiliation_n before_o god_n who_o anger_n be_v visible_a on_o this_o land_n and_o be_v little_o regard_v by_o the_o most_o part_n therefore_o the_o assembly_n indicte_v a_o general_a fast_o and_o humiliation_n to_o be_v observe_v universal_o in_o all_o church_n upon_o the_o first_o two_o sunday_n of_o august_n next_o and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o to_o be_v grave_o declare_v according_a to_o the_o ground_n they_o see_v and_o conceive_v x._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o presbytery_n take_v order_n within_o their_o own_o bound_n for_o visitation_n of_o grammar_n school_n and_o reformation_n of_o they_o as_o occasion_n shall_v require_v and_o certain_a brethren_n be_v ordain_v to_o visit_v college_n to_o examine_v the_o life_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o master_n the_o discipline_n and_o order_n there_o and_o where_o they_o find_v any_o abuse_n to_o reform_v it_o so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v and_o to_o report_v both_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v and_o what_o abuse_n they_o can_v not_o reform_v that_o year_n be_v quietness_n in_o the_o country_n except_v great_a trouble_n betwixt_o the_o maxwell_n and_o johnston_n in_o the_o south_n and_o the_o like_a in_o the_o hielands_n and_o by_o windy_a harvest_n follow_v great_a scarcety_n and_o dearth_n xxxiii_o the_o king_n know_v that_o the_o gen._n assembly_n be_v to_o conveen_n 1596._o 1596._o in_o march_n send_v for_o robert_n bruce_n one_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o edinburgh_n and_o as_o b._n spotsword_n have_v it_o hope_v that_o by_o the_o sway_n he_o carry_v in_o these_o meeting_n some_o proposition_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o reclaim_n of_o the_o exile_a lord_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o the_o
the_o year_n 1541._o s._n 101_o 102._o and_o again_o an._n 1545._o s._n 116_o m._n 117_o e_o christ_n redemption_n be_v of_o the_o elect_a 97._o m_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o redemption_n by_o christ_n 294_o 295_o 348._o b._n 361_o 362._o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v intend_v 223._o b._n 345._o b._n 359._o m._n 471._o m._n 501._o m._n 550._o b._n 553._o m._n 565._o m._n it_o be_v propound_v 454._o e._n 470._o m._n 547._o e._n and_o it_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o cause_n in_o assemble_v the_o council_n at_o constance_n 565._o m._n and_o at_o basile_n 571._o m._n and_o at_o trent_n s._n 243._o m._n 245_o b._n many_o thousand_o be_v desirous_a of_o a_o reformation_n 541_o 574._o it_o be_v attempt_v in_o scotland_n but_o stop_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n except_o one_o 559._o m._n it_o be_v foretell_v 426._o m._n 474._o m._n 477._o m._n 479._o m._n 480._o e._n 530._o b._n 552._o b._n &_o e._n 553._o m._n s._n 7._o e._n 8._o m._n 17._o b._n e._n it_o be_v promise_v by_o pope_n adrian_n s._n 37._o e._n by_o pope_n paul_n the_o iii_o s._n 43._o b._n god_n make_v preparation_n unto_o the_o reformation_n 527._o m._n s._n 26._o m._n 31._o b._n 35._o e._n reformation_n shall_v be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 470._o m_o the_o talk_n of_o reformation_n be_v odious_a at_o rome_n 541._o m._n s._n 7._o b_o 277._o m._n head_n of_o reformation_n propound_v at_o rome_n s._n 44._o m._n the_o occasion_n of_o the_o reformation_n s_o 55._o m._n the_o progress_n of_o reformation_n s._n 64._o m._n 69._o e._n 70._o b._n m._n 72._o m._n 77._o e._n 78._o 81_o e_fw-la 89._o e._n 92._o m._n 94._o m._n 114._o m._n etc._n etc._n the_o cause_n of_o the_o difference_n in_o reformation_n between_o england_n and_o scotland_n s._n 328_o 329._o false_a calumny_n raise_v against_o the_o reform_a s._n 134._o religion_n seldom_o arise_v from_o prince_n s._n 228_o 330._o b_o the_o distinction_n between_o regulars_n and_o secular_o 227._o e._n 290._o e._n a_o contention_n between_o they_o and_o how_o it_o be_v end_v 227_o 228._o relic_n be_v superstitious_a 18_o 42_o 45_o 69._o e_o reprobation_n 260._o m._n 370._o b_o richard_n armacanus_n oppose_v the_o friar_n 496._o the_o righteousness_n of_o man_n be_v imperfect_a 276_o 337_o e_o the_o multitude_n of_o rite_n be_v oppose_v 381._o e_o men_n shall_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o follow_v any_o church_n in_o rite_n 25._o e._n s._n 92._o e_fw-la responsorium_fw-la of_o the_o mass_n 143._o e_fw-la robert_n bruce_n king_n of_o scotland_n 493._o his_o three_o advice_n before_o his_o death_n 495._o m_o trouble_n in_o riga_n for_o the_o new_a calendar_n s._n 311._o a_o letter_n of_o the_o emperor_n rodolph_n the_o ii_o show_v the_o condition_n of_o many_o nation_n in_o europe_n at_o that_o time_n s._n 320._o the_o roman_a church_n receive_v paganism_n by_o degree_n 15._o e._n 39_o e._n 42._o b._n 43_o b._n 46._o m._n &_o e._n 73._o b._n 75._o b._n 79._o e._n 81._o e._n 141._o m._n 142._o m._n 146._o b._n 347._o m._n her_o corruption_n be_v lament_v 24._o 25._o b._n 156._o b._n 231._o b._n 485._o m._n s._n 20_o 21_o 29._o e._n 287._o b._n the_o roman_a church_n receive_v temporal_a land_n 22._o b._n 70_o 71._o b._n &_o e_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n 55_o 84_o 85._o nor_o head_n of_o other_o church_n 503_o she_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o primitive_a church_n 212._o m._n 231._o b._n 367._o e._n 470._o e._n she_o become_v worse_a and_o worse_o 529._o e._n 485._o m._n 547._o e._n the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v babylon_n 330._o e._n 355._o m._n 358._o e._n 423._o e._n 426._o m._n 548._o m._n s._n 2._o e._n 30._o e_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n nor_o universal_a bishop_n 363._o m._n 367._o e._n the_o roman_a church_n have_v her_o authority_n from_o counsel_n 437._o e._n 476_o e._n in_o rome_n truth_n be_v the_o great_a crime_n 477._o b._n her_o estate_n be_v describe_v in_o a_o vision_n 481._o e._n and_o again_o 482._o m._n 544._o e_fw-la the_o roman_n aim_v at_o their_o civil_a liberty_n 318._o b._n 319._o m._n 328._o e._n the_o first_o holy_a rose_n 459._o b_o russia_n become_v christian_n 224._o s_o how_o the_o solemn_a keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n be_v revive_v in_o england_n s._n 529._o many_o do_v speak_v but_o of_o two_o sacrament_n 133._o m._n 331._o e._n 335._o b_o how_o the_o papist_n prove_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n s._n 256._o m_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v afraid_a to_o define_v a_o sacrament_n s._n 256._o m_o many_o sacrament_n be_v not_o of_o god_n 495._o e._n 547._o e_fw-la a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n 136._o e._n yet_o be_v so_o call_v for_o certain_a reason_n 137_o b._n 272._o e._n the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o mass_n 137_o 139._o none_o can_v offer_v christ_n in_o a_o sacrifice_n but_o he_o himself_o 217._o m_o our_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o one_o and_o be_v once_o offer_v 217._o e._n 294._o m._n 349._o e._n the_o papist_n profess_v to_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n but_o with_o some_o difference_n s._n 221._o the_o saint_n hear_v not_o prayer_n 344._o b_o salvation_n be_v of_o god_n only_o 215._o b._n 223._o b_o the_n saracen_n spoil_n italy_n 11._o b._n 115._o b._n &_o m._n 116._o m._n 117._o m._n 119_o m._n 197._o m._n 202._o m._n scanderbag_n king_n of_o epirus_n 524._o the_o black_a saturday_n s._n 543._o the_o schism_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n 11._o m._n 129._o b_o 259._o the_o schoolman_n their_o first_o age_n 416._o e._n their_o second_o age_n 417._o b._n the_o opposition_n among_o they_o 419_o 420._o their_o three_o age_n 488._o they_o despise_v the_o scripture_n and_o cry_v up_o aristotle_n 488._o scotland_n become_v christian_n 55._o the_o scot_n conquer_v the_o picht_n 185._o the_o change_n of_o a_o circumstance_n in_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o king_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o much_o bloodshed_n 226_o 227_o 274._o a_o oration_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n 378._o the_o scot_n despise_v a_o summons_n send_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o pope_n legate_n 449._o m._n after_o the_o death_n of_o king_n alexander_n the_o iii_o be_v much_o trouble_n for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n 450_o 452._o the_o king_n forbid_v to_o seek_v a_o benefice_n from_o the_o pope_n 560_o 561._o how_o the_o reformation_n begin_v in_o scotland_n s._n 169_o 173_o 179._o the_o first_o public_a step_n of_o reformation_n 182._o another_o step_n 184._o a_o three_o step_n of_o it_o 192._o a_o protestation_n make_v in_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1558._o 194._o a_o supplication_n of_o the_o nobility_n unto_o the_o queen_n regent_n 196._o their_o letter_n unto_o their_o adversary_n and_o neutral_n 198._o another_o unto_o the_o prelate_n 201._o a_o parley_n between_o the_o party_n 201._o the_o condition_n be_v break_v by_o the_o popish_a party_n 204._o a_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n denounce_v against_o the_o queen_n regent_n but_o not_o execute_v 210._o she_o die_v repent_v of_o her_o violence_n 217._o the_o religion_n be_v establish_v by_o parliament_n 219._o the_o first_o assembly_n of_o the_o church_n 222._o queen_n mary_n return_v ratifi_v the_o religion_n by_o act_n of_o council_n 224._o two_o remarkable_a point_n concernin_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o reformation_n of_o scotland_n s._n 352_o 353._o the_o office_n of_o a_o superintendent_n in_o scotland_n s._n 218._o m_o the_o power_n of_o provincial_a synod_n in_o scotland_n s._n 454._o m._n presbytery_n or_o classical_a meeting_n ordain_v there_o s._n 400_o m._n and_o more_o full_o design_v 407_o e._n 410._o m._n 413._o m._n rule_n for_o order_v they_o 424._o e._n 448._o e._n the_o power_n of_o presbytery_n 454_o e._n the_o order_n and_o model_n of_o synod_n s._n 566_o rule_n for_o visitation_n of_o minister_n s._n 562._o and_o of_o congregation_n s._n 562._o and_o of_o presbytery_n s._n 563._o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o scripture_n be_v god_n letter_n to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o man_n and_o the_o book_n of_o life_n 26._o e._n 104._o b._n 222_o e._n 253._o m._n 332._o b._n 487._o b._n 501._o e._n it_o be_v perfect_a contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a 27._o e._n 88_o m._n 95._o e._n 132._o b._n &_o e_o 173._o b._n 335_o e_fw-la 435._o e._n it_o answer_v unto_o every_o man_n doubt_n 28._o b._n it_o shall_v be_v read_v public_o for_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n 64._o b._n these_o book_n be_v write_v from_o god_n 96._o b._n 214._o b._n 332._o m._n 333._o e._n 501._o e._n s._n 22._o m._n the_o writer_n of_o they_o can_v not_o err_v in_o
they_o 166._o what_o be_v these_o book_n 88_o e._n 103._o m_o 112._o e._n 333._o e._n 435._o m._n 487._o b._n 477._o b._n 501._o m._n those_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o all_o doctrine_n 367._o b._n 369._o b._n 475._o b._n 502_o 543._o e._n and_o judge_v of_o all_o controversy_n 545._o m._n they_o shall_v be_v expound_v as_o the_o writer_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v 96._o m._n how_o to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o 96._o m._n they_o be_v very_o profitable_a and_o sure_a 101._o m._n 213._o m._n 215._o b_o 216_o m._n 217._o m._n 222._o b._n 224._o b._n the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o man_n 215._o b._n and_o for_o the_o age_n then_o to_o come_v 172._o m._n 212._o m._n child_n shall_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o scripture_n 216._o m._n they_o be_v a_o buckler_n against_o all_o heresy_n 213._o m._n and_o the_o singular_a ground_n of_o faith_n 221._o e._n 266._o m._n the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v alike_o and_o of_o the_o same_o author_n 213._o e._n 214._o what_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v not_o we_o shall_v not_o inquire_v 213._o b._n they_o shall_v be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n 98._o e._n 99_o b._n 496._o b._n 501._o m._n how_o the_o translation_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v 367_o b._n s._n 31._o b._n every_o family_n in_o scotland_n be_v ordain_v to_o have_v a_o bible_n and_o psalm_n book_n s._n 401._o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v subject_a unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n 249._o m._n they_o be_v reject_v by_o the_o preach_a friar_n 488._o and_o become_v unknown_a to_o many_o church_n man_n s._n 26._o e._n 27._o b_o 166._o e._n 179._o e._n 182_o m_o some_o sign_n of_o christ_n second_o come_v 480._o god_n only_o can_v forgive_v sin_n 481._o m._n 550_o m._n when_o sin_n be_v forgive_v punishment_n be_v also_o forgive_v 550._o m._n 551._o b_o simon_n thurvey_n a_o arrogant_a disputant_n become_v ignorant_a on_o a_o sudden_a 383_o e_o singing_n in_o christian_a church_n begin_v and_o be_v abuse_v 141._o m_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v call_v the_o catholic_n king_n 518._o m._n the_o spanish_a inquisition_n s._n 155._o e_fw-la the_o first_o station_n 13._o a_o meeting_n of_o the_o protestant_n at_o smalcald_a s._n 102._o e._n another_o there_o s._n 105._o a_o three_o there_o s._n 109._o sweden_n become_v christian_n 269._o and_o reform_v s._n 92._o some_o scythian_n call_v rhositi_fw-la become_v christian_n 184._o m_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v divide_v unto_o all_o 29._o m._n 334._o m._n 367_o m._n s_o 288._o e._n the_o unworthy_a eat_v not_o christ_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n 102._o m._n 175._o e._n 183._o e._n the_o bread_n be_v call_v the_o figure_n or_o sacrament_n or_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n body_n 112._o e._n 133._o m._n 139._o m._n 146._o e._n 175._o e._n 181._o m._n 162._o b._n 228._o e._n 296._o b._n 367._o m._n &_o e._n 503._o b._n the_o ancient_n and_o primitive_a form_n of_o administer_a the_o supper_n 36._o b._n it_o be_v receive_v daily_o and_o then_o each_o lord_n day_n 138._o m._n the_o bread_n be_v not_o worship_v 146._o m._n 481._o m._n all_o do_v receive_v the_o element_n 146._o e._n 147_o 184._o b._n the_o cup_n when_o deny_v unto_o the_o people_n 147._o e._n what_o be_v do_v with_o the_o relic_n 148._o e._n it_o shall_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o dead_a 176._o e._n the_o bread_n remain_v after_o consecration_n 505._o b_o a_o forge_a distinction_n of_o oral_a eat_n visible_o and_o invisible_o 259._o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o s._n 16._o e._n a_o book_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v find_v in_o holland_n and_o send_v unto_o luther_n and_o helvetia_n s._n 156_o 157._o how_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n beg●n_v among_o the_o reform_a s._n 85_o agreement_n be_v ●ought_v s._n 104_o 105._o bucer_n make_v a_o retractation_n of_o what_o he_o have_v think_v of_o luther_n opinion_n s._n 160_o 165._o sursum_fw-la corda_n what_o these_o word_n in_o the_o mass_n do_v teach_v 145._o m_o superstition_n have_v a_o two_o fold_n influence_n s._n 329._o m_o t_o tax_n pay_v out_o of_o france_n unto_o rome_n 428_o 429._o the_o tartar_n conquer_v the_o land_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o lose_v they_o again_o 440._o the_o templary_n or_o red_a friar_n be_v condemn_v and_o their_o cause_n 455._o theophylact_fw-mi bishop_n of_o bulgaria_n his_o doctrine_n 212_o 219._o he_o be_v vindicate_v from_o the_o romish_a error_n of_o freewill_n election_n by_o fore_n see_v faith_n or_o work_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o of_o peter_n primacy_n 218_o 221._o thomas_n arundel_n the_o cruel_a bishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v plague_v by_o god_n 557._o m_o thomas_n becket_n 376._o 377._o the_o thought_n of_o man_n be_v rule_v by_o god_n 28._o b_o tithe_n shall_v be_v pay_v 189._o m._n 190._o m._n 415._o m._n s._n 348._o tithe_n be_v take_v by_o the_o pi●hts_n from_o the_o church_n and_o within_o less_o than_o ten_o year_n they_o lose_v land_n and_o all_o 186._o transubstantiation_n 152_o 176._o b._n 181._o m._n 219_o 220_o 254._o m._n 255._o a_o decreet_a of_o a_o roman_a synod_n be_v contrary_a unto_o transubstantiation_n 257._o e_o it_o be_v not_o believe_v in_o lombard_n time_n 372._o e_o it_o be_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n 387._o b_o it_o beget_v many_o new_a question_n 417._o m._n 420._o e_o how_o it_o come_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o england_n 227._o m._n and_o afterward_o be_v condemn_v 228_o 229._o and_o in_o italy_n 254._o m._n 552._o it_o be_v not_o understand_v at_o trent_n s._n 264._o treason_n be_v punish_v 8._o m_o the_o first_o torch_n in_o church_n 13._o m_o many_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o dare_v not_o profess_v it_o 481._o b_o truth_n be_v call_v the_o great_a crime_n 477._o b_o the_o turk_n resist_v the_o saracen_n 94._o e._n and_o overthrow_v they_o 271._o their_o first_o emperor_n be_v ottoman_n 492._o e_o they_o take_v constantinople_n 512._o m._n 525._o their_o cruelty_n and_o revenue_n 554._o a_o dispute_n of_o a_o turk_n with_o a_o christian_a s._n 151_o 153._o v_o the_o vandal_n become_v christian_n 224_o 270._o vandalica_fw-la reformatio_fw-la what_o 375._o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v deny_v 373._o b_o virtue_n in_o man_n be_v of_o god_n work_n and_o not_o man_v 37._o m_o the_o holy_a vessel_n 144._o e_fw-la the_o holy_a vesture_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n 144._o 149._o m_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n have_v but_o usual_a vesture_n 144._o m_o the_o vesture_n of_o preacher_n 385._o the_o title_n vicar_n of_o christ_n 322._o m_o vigiliae_fw-la siculae_fw-la 395._o m_o vision_n concern_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n 481._o e._n 539._o b_o a_o visitation_n of_o the_o university_n of_o aberdein_n s._n 362._o the_o university_n of_o paris_n begin_v 99_o e_fw-la the_o university_n of_o st._n andrews_n begin_v 557._o b._n and_o enlarge_v 559._o university_n erect_v in_o germany_n s._n 4._o e_o no_o union_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n 489._o m._n s._n 297._o e._n nor_o in_o their_o service_n s_n 280._o e_fw-la the_o title_n universal_a bihop_n be_v oppugn_v 9_o and_o affect_v and_o obtain_v 13._o where_o it_o be_v also_o expound_v a_o usurper_n reign_v crafty_o and_o wicked_o 5._o w_n wafer_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 147._o e_fw-la the_o waldenses_n begin_v 350._o their_o number_n 351._o their_o doctrine_n be_v declare_v general_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o romanist_n and_o protestant_n 352._o article_n impute_v unto_o they_o 354._o objection_n against_o they_o be_v answer_v 355._o the_o occasion_n of_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n 353._o how_o they_o be_v persecute_v 356_o 420._o e._n 423._o e._n 475._o m._n 476._o their_o article_n and_o dispute_n with_o the_o dominican_n 423_o e_o 424._o their_o supplication_n to_o king_n uladislaus_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n s._n 9_o the_o clergy_n will_v have_v they_o all_o in_o merindol_n to_o be_v kill_v but_o king_n lewes_n the_o xii_o will_v not_o s._n 23._o m._n they_o be_v persecute_v again_o s._n 131_o e._n 140._o e._n they_o have_v liberty_n in_o savoy_n s._n 141._o m._n the_o war_n of_o jerusalem_n begin_v 271._o at_o the_o first_o some_o do_v espy_v the_o finistrous_a end_n of_o that_o expedition_n 272._o m_o westphalia_n become_v christian_n 61._o m_o whitgift_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n his_o earnestness_n for_o rite_n his_o faw_a on_o the_o queen_n and_o his_o different_a genius_n from_o his_o predecessor_n s._n 337_o 338._o freewill_n be_v by_o god_n grace_n 28._o e._n 96._o e._n 100_o e._n 134._o e._n 160_o 215._o 180_o b_o 211._o e._n